Wensheng Wang-White Lotus Rebels and South China Pirates - Crisis and Reform in The Qing Empire-Harvard University Press (2014)
Wensheng Wang-White Lotus Rebels and South China Pirates - Crisis and Reform in The Qing Empire-Harvard University Press (2014)
Wensheng Wang-White Lotus Rebels and South China Pirates - Crisis and Reform in The Qing Empire-Harvard University Press (2014)
AND
WENSHENG WANG
Contents
Introduction
I
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
1. Origins of the Qianlong-Jiaqing Crises
17
II
A VIEW FROM THE BOTTOM
2. The White Lotus Rebellion in the Han River Highlands
3. The Piracy Crisis in the South China Sea
81
III
A VIEW FROM THE TOP
4. Court Politics and Imperial Visions
5. The Inner White Lotus Rebellion
6. The Jiaqing Reforms
113
132
165
209
37
vi
Contents
List of Abbreviations and Primary Sources
Notes 265
Acknowledgments
Index
323
319
261
Introduction
Introduction
Introduction
Introduction
Introduction
lion and Its Enemies, for instance, Philip A. Kuhn has studied how suppressing the Taiping rebels contributed to the rise of gentry-led militarization and to the devolution of central state power to local societal forces.10
Yet many of those momentous changes, as Kuhn acknowledges, can be
traced back to the Qianlong-Jiaqing crises. I argue that the White Lotus
and piracy upheavals, in particular, had exerted a profound impact on
how the Qing state coped with later disturbances.
With the rise of the new social history and cultural studies in the
last four decades, China scholars have generally shifted their focus from
top-down studies of political history to bottom-up examinations of local
society. Inspired by this downward turn, most recent studies of social protest have focused on the local origins, grassroots bases, regional development, and mobilizing networks of collective actions, while to some extent
neglecting their broader transformative effects on state and society. Due to
this unidirectional treatment, as Charles Tilly rightly suggested, we know a
great deal more about how historical transformations lead to violent contention than we do about the opposite direction of causal mechanism.11
When it comes to the White Lotus rebellion and south China piracy, a
number of scholars, including Suzuki Chusei, Dian H. Murray, Robert J.
Antony, and Cecily McCaffrey, have examined one of the two events in
terms of its nature, origins, and development in discrete regional settings.12
These single-case and bottom-up studies have provided an important
foundation for understanding the two upheavals themselves yet pay inadequate attention to the parallels and connections between the two crises as
well as their macro-political influence and supraregional repercussions.
Introduction
which in turn shaped the Qings responses to the White Lotus and piracy
upheavals.
My central contention is that the two catastrophic events propelled the
Jiaqing state to reorganize and reposition itself, thus producing a critical
conjuncture in the structural transformation of the Qing empire as well as
its place within the Sino-centric tributary system. The resulting changes
included reforms of the central bureaucratic establishment and local mobilization under gentry leadership, as well as more flexible, rational approaches to popular religion, social protest, the maritime world, and foreign
diplomacy. These consolidation efforts did not represent steps toward inevitable dynastic decline; they instead initiated a strategic state retreat that
pulled Qing empire-building away from a vicious cycle of aggressive overextension (which bred resistance) and back onto a more sustainable track
of development. This deliberate striving for political sustainability, though
unable to save the dynasty from its ultimate collapse, represented a durable, constructive approach to the overarching structural problems facing
the late Qing and the early Republic.
Introduction
Wong (challenges, capacities, commitment, and claims), and Kenneth Pomeranz (service provision and resource extraction).15
Sustainable political development, furthermore, should be studied in the
context of a longer historical process wherein each stage inherits problems
and opportunities from the earlier phases while also exerting influence on
what comes later. Only in this evolutionary and interconnective milieu can
we fully understand the essence of sustainable politics, a compatible statesociety relationship that can be reproduced on a long-term basis. This line
of reasoning allows us to reconsider the process of Qing empire-building
by adopting a more balanced analysis of what state leaders accomplished
versus what they could not achieve, given that the possibilities for change
were bounded by inherited conditions in a highly structuralized historical
setting.
On the basis of this criterion, it can be argued that a major bottleneck
for sustainable politics appeared during the last two decades of the Qianlong reign. This period witnessed an overloaded Qing state working near
the limit of premodern empire-building, largely because its minimalistic
governing apparatus, including its administrative and military systems,
could hardly contain Chinas dynamic, expanding society, which encompassed a huge population and territory. To overcome this worsening
structural predicament, the hard-pressed Qianlong took what proved to be
counterproductive and unsustainable steps in empire-building. On the one
hand he strengthened his imperial supremacy over the bureaucracy by empowering his inner-court (neiting) agencies and most trusted confidants, a
convenient strategy that backfired and created an unprecedented institutional crisis within the court. On the other he fostered a heavy-handed approach to social control through a series of uncompromising policies and
campaigns that overtaxed the states resources and pushed its power to a
breaking point. For instance, Qianlongs unrealistic efforts to root out heterodox sects (White Lotus) and secret societies (Triads, Heaven and Earth)
had the opposite effect of radicalizing these challenging groups, rendering
them even more powerful and dangerous. This precarious combination of
aggressive empire-building and defensive popular resistance was further
aggravated by uncontrollable social transformations like demographic
growth, frontier expansion, and commercialization.
Together these transformations greatly undermined the traditional mechanisms of state control over officialdom and local society. Facing unpredictable pressure from both above and below, more and more bureaucrats
resorted to official patronage, factional struggle, corruption, and power
abuse as key strategies for political survival. Thanks to such dysfunctional
practices, they were able to reduce imperial control and deflect central
Introduction
demands while entrenching themselves in bureaucratic protection. Consequently, local governments became increasingly ineffective, predatory, and
costly to run during the late Qianlong reign. This deterioration of civil
administration, together with misguided imperial policies, directly fueled
an intensifying wave of frontier protest that overstretched the Qing army
and overwhelmed its coercive power. The resulting campaigns of repression, not surprisingly, turned out to be increasingly difficult, wasteful, and
expensive. All these changes foreground the questions of political sustainability and governability, the latter of which refers to the states capacity to
deal with the increasing demands of society and to regulate sociopolitical
conflicts, which became especially acute toward the end of the eighteenth
century.
Many recent studies recognize that the Qianlong reign, especially its latter part, might not have been as glorious as previously thought. Building
on such revisionist literature, I propose labeling this period an era of political dividend that owed its success largely to propitious timing and favorable legacies. Qianlong had the good fortune to inherit the great enterprise from his Manchu forebears at a favorable historical juncture,
which in turn helped him carry the dynasty to greater heights of accomplishment. This aggressive ruler greatly expanded the states territory and
increased its penetration into local society, both of which facilitated extraordinary growth in his power, and vice versa. Such a big leap forward in
empire-building, however, was by no means sustainable because it involved
a long-term cost, as shown by the many-sided crises during the QianlongJiaqing transition.
This study highlights a major but often neglected discontent of Qianlongs prosperous age. By the end of his long reign, the emperor had exhausted the potential of sustainable political development in premodern
times as his policies and campaigns often ran up against the states dwindling capacity to control society. This structural limitation, dictated by the
worsening ratio of organizational resources (most visibly in the form of
administrative and fiscal ones) to population size, was further exacerbated
by the emperors flamboyant governing style and inflated personal goals.
Qianlongs fixation on self-aggrandizement and short-term goals was especially evident in his peculiar patronage of Heshen, a rapacious Manchu
courtier, and his increased collection of self-assessed fines (yizuiyin; discussed later). Both arrangements most clearly epitomized the tragedy of
late Qianlong politics because they not only demoralized the bureaucratic
system but also blinded the emperor to the importance of long-term political sustainability. His remarkable success in empire-building, viewed from
this perspective, was often achieved at the price of overexploiting already
Introduction
10
Introduction
Introduction
11
12
Introduction
dynamism of East Asian history and to provide a useful way of supplementing the China-centered approach.
A Disclaimer
Before ending this introduction, a disclaimer is in order. This study seeks
to challenge the conventional narrative of incorrigible state erosion by rethinking the significance of the Qianlong-Jiaqing transition. In emphasizing the constructive ramifications of Jiaqings crisis management and
Introduction
13
14
Introduction
I
Contextualizing Crises
Chapter One
Origins of the
Qianlong-Jiaqing Crises
18
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
uprising lasted for just a month and involved no more than a few thousand people, its significance should not be underestimated. As the only
major instance of social protest occurring in Chinas heartland during the
late Qianlong reign, Wang Luns revolt greatly alarmed the emperor and
the Manchu court. Susan Naquin calls it not only the first crack in the
smooth faade of the high Ching [Qing] empire but also the real beginning of White Lotus millennialism during the eighteenth century.1 Henceforth this largely peaceful cult in the Qing came under increasing government suppression that transformed it into a key organizational vehicle
for anti-state uprisings, a trend which continued into the subsequent Jiaqing reign.
As a tipping point in this dramatic transition, the Wang Lun rebellion
initiated a wave of sectarian rebellions during the ensuing four decades. It
convinced Emperor Qianlong that the White Lotus religion was the most
heterodox of the heterodoxies (xiejiao zhong zhi xiejiao) which should be
extirpated. Thereafter, unprovoked persecution of the sectarian organizations seems to have greatly intensified, first in north China and then in
many other parts of the empire. It reached a pinnacle in the 1790s, bringing about violent reactions from White Lotus congregations throughout
central-western China. Wang Luns uprising, in short, can be regarded as a
preview and prototype of the much larger rebellion of 1796; it also
prompted the government to launch a vicious pattern of repression that
ultimately provoked the later sectarian uprisings.2
19
tion. In addition, it also involved an ethnically charged confrontation between Han Chinese settlers and aboriginal tribespeople in Taiwan who
tended to side with the Qing authorities.3
This uprising started on January 16, 1787, and quickly spread all over
the island. It nonetheless was stamped out within a year, with Lin Shuangwen himself captured by imperial forces, led by the famed general
Fukangan. While Qianlong lauded this hard-fought campaign as one of
his ten great military achievements, the succeeding emperor, Jiaqing,
deemed it, in William Rowes words, a turning point in the empires string
of glorious expansionist victories.4 The reason is not far to seek: this shortlived revolt was the first rebellion in Qing history that the regular imperial
army failed to put down. The hard-pressed state, in fact, had to recruit a
large number of informal local militiamen to supplement its ineffective
troops. This unprecedented remedy signaled the unsustainablility of Qing
war-making and empire-building during the late Qianlong reign. A similar
strategy of local militarization was replicated throughout the late Qing
period and became increasingly important in the campaigns against the
Miao, White Lotus, Taiping, and Nian rebels.
Notwithstanding that it was a brotherhood association, Tiandihui was
not deemed illegal prior to the rebellion of 1787. Four years later, however,
the increasingly vigilant Qianlong formally outlawed the organization as
seditious and sought to exterminate it through ruthless persecution. The
ambitious monarch, according to David Ownby, went so far as to try to
eradicate the very practice of hui (secret society) formation in Fujian
and Guangdong, which makes his regime the first in Chinese history to
ban sworn brotherhoods as Wen-hsiung Hsu asserts. This unprecedentedly
harsh policy, together with the White Lotus rebellion in central-western
China, greatly politicized Tiandihui and gave a powerful impetus to its
growth at the turn of the nineteenth century. The governments interdictive
measures, meanwhile, provoked desperate resistance from the secret-society
members, some of whom joined sea bandits in the hope of fleeing government repression. Consequently, the 1790s saw protracted conflicts between
the Manchu state and brotherhood organizations off the southeast coast,
which aggravated the piracy problem in the region. The rise of Tiandihui,
like that of sea robbers and mountain bandits, suggests that sporadic nonstate violence was converging into large-scale, antistate protests organized
by voluntary associations in the late eighteenth century.5
20
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
21
22
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
his early reign saw little of the power rivalries that had consumed the energies and treasuries of Kangxi and Yongzheng. In solidifying his authority
over bureaucratic and hereditary power, Qianlong seemed to personif[y]
the civilized autocracy of the eighteenth-century Qing court more than
any other Manchu ruler.12
With all the power he had mustered, Qianlong was unable to overcome
a fundamental limitation to premodern political development: the worsening ratio of organizational resources to population size. As a result of this
structural dilemma, the ability of his government to regulate local life and
mitigate social tensions actually deteriorated over the late eighteenth century. Meanwhile, the aging emperor was increasingly beset by an eternal
principal-agent problem as his ability to tame the officialdom declined,
which in turn exacerbated the states administrative disarray and fiscal
weakness. Whereas Tuan-Hwee Sng ascribes this issue largely to Chinas
extraordinary geographical size, I place more emphasis on Qianlongs personal impact in aggravating the paradox.13 The emperor found it expedient to play up the role of inner-court institutions in order to strengthen
his own arbitrary authority while curtailing the routinized influence of the
outer-court bureaucracy. In so doing, he transferred power from the executive branch of the government to a small coterie of most trusted aides
who acted in his name.
No official could match Heshen when it comes to imperial favor and
patronage. Within a period of six months, this political upstart ascended
from minor Manchu bodyguard to Qianlongs personal favorite in 1776
after a string of important appointments, including vice president of the
Board of Revenue, grand councilor, and director of the Imperial Household
Department.14 In the next twenty-three years his notorious abuse of power
and rapacious appetite for wealth made him one of the greatest villains in
imperial history. Qianlong, assisted by a strengthened inner court led by
his surrogates like Heshen, maximized his imperial authority and became
arguably the strongest ruler in Chinese history. How, then, was such
highly centralized imperial control dissipated during the last quarter of
the eighteenth century? Furthermore, why did the last decade of Qianlongs prosperous reign turn out to be one of the most chaotic periods in
Qing history?15
To answer both questions, it will be helpful to start from the general
interplay between state and society that is critical for the long-term reproduction of any sociopolitical order. The essence of this interplay is a neverending process of conflicts and negotiation that strives for an optimal distribution of power, wealth, and prestige amid different strategic actors.16
The Qing monarchs, to be sure, played the most important role in this pro-
23
Population Growth
As China moved into the mid-eighteenth century, the empire faced a host
of wide-ranging but interrelated challenges on many fronts. On the societal side, explosive population growth remained the most striking feature
of Chinese social history in late imperial and modern times.19 The Qianlong reign, in particular, saw a doubling of Chinas population, which
reached 313 million in 1794. The peak period of this accelerated growth,
according to Ping-ti Hos reckoning, was between 1740 and 1775, only
one generation predating the Miao, White Lotus, and piracy disturbances.20 Ramon H. Myers and Yeh-chien Wang locate the highest rate of
annual population growth in the years between 1779 and 1794. Susan
Naquin and Evelyn Rawski, more specifically, contend that the demographic growth rate reached its apex around 1800. Their different data
notwithstanding, most scholars may well concur with Hos argument that
by the last quarter of the eighteenth century there was every indication
24
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
25
26
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
Exploiting the states feeble presence as well as its inability to keep law and
order, a wide range of nonstate and antistate groups sprang up to fill the
vacuum and exerted great control over the dispersed upland communities.
This development partly explains why most violent protests during the late
Qianlong reign tended to break out in the newly settled frontier regions
rather than in the densely populated river deltas and lowland valleys.30
These borderland crises were caused not by a collapsing state but often by
the governments heightened attempts to eliminate the nonstate or antistate forces that had long evaded or resisted official control.
The Qianlong-Jiaqing transition, on the orthodox side, saw the proliferation of pro-state forces like subbureaucratic agents (local gentry), extrabureaucratic personnel (yamen underlings), and elite-controlled local
militias. These irregular groups, notwithstanding their major intermediary
role between central authorities and local society, could also become key
organizational vehicles for popular protests by readily degenerating into
groups of bandits and rebels, as happened in the White Lotus uprising. So
the boundaries between local militias, insurgents, and brigands were often
ambiguous, slippery, and overlapping, which exemplifies the intrinsic
logic of the state-society continuum in imperial China that was a far cry
from its European counterpart.31
The interacting structural problems mentioned earlier had posed unprecedented challenges to a limited and minimalist state by the end of the
high Qing period. Susan Mann Jones and Philip Kuhn contend that a key
dilemma of the Chia-ching [Jiaqing] administration was an underlying
complex of social problems that overwhelmed the organizational capacities of the Qing bureaucracy. Central among these was the ratio of resources to population.32 This deeply rooted contradiction, in effect, had
already loomed large by the late Qianlong reign.
Territorial Expansion
Besides inward colonization and rapid demographic growth, territorial
expansion was another striking structural change of the high Qing era.
Joseph Fletcher held that Manchu military expansion was one of the three
eighteenth-century changes (together with population upswing and increasing European presence) that set the course of Chinas subsequent history.
Thanks to Qianlongs much celebrated Ten Great Military Campaigns
(Shiquan Wugong), the territory of Great Qing expanded dramatically and
reached its pinnacle in the 1770s. His conquest of Tibet, Xinjiang, and
Mongolia, one of the largest territorial expansions in world history,
27
brought all these inner Asian regions under the sovereignty of one central
government for the first time.33
Such growth in Qing population and territorial size, however, was neither accompanied by a corresponding expansion in the number of field
officials nor supported by a commensurate increase in the administrative
resources allotted for local authorities. The enlarged empire therefore
faced ever-mounting challenges to effective imperial control and central
coordination, a situation that was especially apparent in the border regions of various kinds. An enduring dilemma of Chinese frontier-making,
as Owen Lattimore suggested, was that the range of military striking
power exceeded the range of ability to conquer and incorporate.34 This
structural limitation, in my view, became all the more acute during the late
Qianlong reign, as demonstrated by its mounting wave of frontier crises.
Even the once invincible imperial army could no longer sustain the Qings
expansionist drive into the borderlands, not to mention the states low
capability to administer them.
Generally speaking, one can identify two types of interrelated borderlands in Qing China. External ones like Xinjiang were recently incorporated into the empire but did not receive much immigration until the last
century of the dynasty. Strategically located on the far-flung edge of the
empire, these frontiers of conquest grappled with neighboring polities and
marked the limits of Qing sovereignty. In contrast to such changing political interfaces between states, internal frontiers like the Han River highlands had long been governed as the outskirts of China proper which
symbolized the outer limit of its agricultural heartland. Many of these
mountainous peripheries, as essentially frontiers of settlement, only began
to receive large numbers of immigrants during the eighteenth century. After securing the northwestern borderlands in the 1770s, Emperor Qianlong gradually shifted the focus of his frontier-making to those internal
peripheries where governmental power was only intermittently projected.
Consequently, his policy toward the highlands between Hubei, Shaanxi,
and Sichuan provinces changed from laissez-faire to a tightening grip on
drifting populations and freewheeling resources (like smuggled salt and
privately minted coins). Increasing government control pushed various
frontier groups to ally with the similarly hard-pressed White Lotus sectarians and to join their antistate operations across this mountainous borderland. Similarly, the south China pirates were forced to seek outside support
by collaborating with the Tay Son regime in Annam.
The cost of sustaining politico-military power in remote peripheries
was often unacceptably heavy for a premodern agricultural state. This is
especially true for the Qing regime, given its strong commitment to light
28
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
taxation (in comparison with both the previous Chinese dynasties and
most of its European and Asian counterparts). With administrative resources remaining largely unexpanded, the local authorities found it increasingly difficult to secure more than a tenuous control of the internal
borderlands, let alone improve basic services to them. Under such circumstances, Qianlongs unrealistic ambition to tame the frontier societies politicized their disgruntled segments and, furthermore, pushed them into
transregional or even transnational rebellious movements. Thus when internal borderlands became the target of increasing state regulation, they
served naturally as the center of almost every episode of major disturbance
in the late eighteenth century. The seemingly expanding imperial rule, consequently, became weakened or even paralyzed in Chinas many peripheries during the Qianlong-Jiaqing transition. It should be emphasized that,
as the early-nineteenth-century statecraft official Wei Yuan noted, more
urgent problems appeared in the long-settled internal borderlands than in
the external ones recently acquired by the Qing.35
Following the disastrous frontier war with Burma (17651770), Qianlong seems to have grudgingly decided against further military adventures
beyond the means of the Qing Empire. In a slight change of attitude, he
emphasized the importance of civilian rule (wenzhi) and reaffirmed the
conservative goal of sustaining the prosperity and preserving the peace
(chiying baotai).36 What remained unchanged, however, was the emperors
burning desire to perpetuate his image as an unparalleled sage-ruler. Late
in his reign, Qianlong actually maintained the momentum of empirebuilding by insisting on stringent imperial control over the bureaucracy
and local populace. This was evidenced by his foolhardy invasion of Annam and his relentless campaigns to root out the White Lotus sects, Tiandihui, salt smuggling, and coin counterfeiting. All these aggressive efforts
backfired disastrously as Qianlong extended the reach of the state beyond
a supportable point.
Such failures, as Joel Migdal describes them, created a serious disjunction between the two interlocking yet somewhat contradictory elements of
the state: image and practice. Whereas image denotes a singular picture
of what ideal regimes should be, practice refers to the actual performances
of political actors and agencies in the governing process. The disparity
between the two had reached a startling magnitude in Qing China by the
1790s, placing great pressures on both local bureaucracies and frontier
societies. In response to such heightened pressures, sociopolitical actors at
all levels sought to fashion their own strategies of survivalusually at the
expense of others less capable of defending themselves. Building on
Migdals approach of historical anthropology, which dissects the state and
29
society into their key components, one should study the different pressures that the aforementioned strategic forces encountered and their major
sources of conflict.37
The worsening ratio of organizational resources to population size had
inflamed a wide range of socioeconomic crises that undermined the high
Qing order. This structurally determined problem, by generating an intensified pressure on upward mobility, was applicable to the political realm as
well. Even though the civil service examination system provided the primary ladder of success in mid- and late imperial China, it proved unable
to bridge the widening gap between the relatively small and almost static
size of the formal bureaucracy and the continuing expansion in numbers
of educated degree-holders who wanted positions in that bureaucracy.38
This growing disparity released more and more frustrated degree-holders
into society as what Shmuel Noah Eisenstadt termed free-floating resources that could be used for different purposes. Some of them, like the
evil sheng-yuan [shengyuan; the lowest formal degree holder who passed
the county-level civil service examination] or rotten chien-sheng [jiansheng; students of the Imperial Academy in Beijing ], often became troublemakers who organized a range of nonstate or antistate activities. As C. K.
Yang points out, it was the ruling stratum and its supporting forces
like disaffected gentry and landlordswho led most of the incidents of
social unrest during the nineteenth century.39
The latter half of the Qianlong reign was especially plagued by this crisis
of upward mobility. As Jones and Kuhn explain, pressure upon existing
channels of social mobility undoubtedly contributed to the characteristic
pattern of political behavior in Ching China, the patronage network, in
which patron-client relationships were made to bear more than their usual
burden in the workings of the government.40 Bureaucrats at all levels engaged in a sort of survival politics, which spurred a further expansion of
patronage systems that were locked in perpetual competition over shrinking state resources. This anxiety reached a zenith during Heshens de facto
regency (1780s1799) when virtually no official appointment was made
without a contribution to the powerful minister or his cronies. Under
such circumstances, contemporary political culture called for a high degree of self-defense on the part of the bureaucrats as they engaged in
faction-building, bribery, and embezzlement to secure political survival. In
most big corruption scandals during this period, for instance, beleaguered
officials had little choice but to peculate under the extortion of Heshen.41
Such malfeasance, in practice, had become an accepted rule of official life
operating at all government levels by the end of the Qianlong reign. As
the emperor himself admitted in 1795, only two or three-tenths of the
30
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
31
cluded from the government payroll, which forced them to live on the
collection of the extralegal surcharges mentioned earlier. The contradiction of their low status but significant de facto power gave these extrastatutory agents strong incentive to abuse their authority and maximize their
material return. Like its Republican counterpart, the late Qianlong regime depended largely on this expanding group of entrepreneurial brokers to carry out its administrative tasks and political campaigns at the
local level. Yet, ironically, it proved unable to rein in these unsavory
agents, who became more and more rapacious under excessive imperial
and state pressure.45
This worsening dilemma turned the yamen staff into the most uncontrollable and contested link of the minimalist Chinese imperial system.
Their exploitative coalition with local authorities contributed directly to
the privatization and commercialization of public services, which provided ample opportunities for corruption and maladministration. All of
these became galvanizing points of social protest; they also made the extrainstitutional and personalized system of local administration increasingly difficult and costly to operate.46 Under such conditions, fewer and
fewer people employed peaceful petitions to elicit state support during
times of need. Consequently, Ho-Fung Hung argues, the last third of the
Qianlong reign saw both a sharp drop in nonantagonistic state-engaging
protest and a rapid surge in state-resisting violence. In addition, the
conflict between outlaws, such as smugglers and bandits, and agents of the
state attempting to curb their illicit activities proliferated and became a
major form of social disturbance that shaped the nature and dynamics of
this period.47
The crescendo of violence and protests finally boiled out of control, provoking the massive wave of armed rebellions that peaked in the 1790s.
Many contemporary political actors like Hong Liangji, Prince Zhaolian,
and even Emperor Jiaqing himself expressed sympathy for the White Lotus
believers and found resonance in their inflammatory slogan Guanbi minfan (It was the officials who forced the people to rise up). All of them
concurred that the true root of this uprising lay not in seditious teachings
but in local misrule, as shown by the abusive persecution of alleged sectarians. Hong bitterly observed in 1798 that nowadays, the evil of local
prefects and magistrates is a hundred times what it was one or two decades ago. In fulminating at this rapid degeneration of civil administration, he blamed it almost wholly on Heshen, who had abused imperial
power for two decades. But the proliferation of official venality and corruption, I would argue, was largely a structural problem aggravated by aggressive empire-building during the late Qianlong reign. It was a defensive
32
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
33
Concluding Observations
A critical yet often slighted dimension of the late Qianlong crises, in my
view, is that the transaction costs of imperial and central control had
reached unacceptable heights due to the aforementioned structural and
conjunctural transformations. What is more, the emperors flamboyant
governing style exacerbated these deep-seated problems, which not only
weakened the social glue between state and society but also undercut cooperation and compliance from both the bureaucracy and the populace.
The time-hallowed mechanism of moral persuasion and probationary
ethic thus lost its effectiveness in disciplining officialdom and ensuring
political loyalty. All these changes showcased the startling lack of consonance between the goals of the throne and his unresponsive bureaucrats.
As the internal cohesion of the imperial system began to decline, its function and reproduction had become increasingly contingent on the capacity
of the power brokers at various levels to use scarce resources (like material
and political incentives) to reduce grievances and enforce acquiescence.
34
CONTEXTUALIZING CRISES
II
A View from the Bottom
Chapter Two
art II approaches the dual upheavals from a bottom-up perspective, giving centrality to the local and supralocal logic of collective action and frontier politics. This approach of history from below, as noted
in the introduction, is a long established one in the study of Chinese social
movements. It falls broadly into four typesclass struggle, local politics,
moral economy, and millenarian protestaccording to Daniel Littles classification.1 Building on a combination of the four models, my methodology
of all-encompassing contentious crises situates different explosive events in
a common relational field of state-society interactions. Since both the White
Lotus rebellion and south China piracy represented frontier protest against
the centralizing state, it also is necessary to situate this study within the
growing body of research on borderland and space. In this part, I shall investigate the distinct frontier environments of the two crises as well as how
they together shaped the intertwined processes of social mobilization and
empire-building during the Qianlong-Jiaqing transition.
38
39
Most important, both of these fringe areas had long been part of an interactive nonstate space within the overstretched and overburdened Qing
Empire. The concept of nonstate space was first proposed by Edmund R.
Leach and later developed by James C. Scott in their studies of upland
Southeast Asia (especially Burma). It refers to the largely uncontrolled and
uncontrollable frontier zones that define the limits of state power through
their contentious tradition.3 This general notion is most useful in analyzing the interrelations of empire-building and frontier-making, which constituted the core dynamics of Qing historical change.
The frontier process of empire-building, I would suggest, was also the
process of frontier-making (practices) and frontier construction (image).
As the Chinese state expanded its territory, besides creating new borderlands while consolidating old ones, it also constructed these peripheries
in a hierarchical way, so that they could serve different functions in the
Sino-centric tributary world order.4 This conceptualization was best encapsulated in the following political statement of the Qing: the border
provinces are Chinas gates; the tributary states [wai-fan] are Chinas walls.
We build the walls to protect the gates, and protect the gates to secure the
house. If the walls fall, the gates are endangered, if the gates are endangered, the house is shaken.5 Whereas internal frontiers like the Han River
highlands were governed as a buffer zone to protect China proper against
incursions from the outer provinces, outer maritime frontiers like the South
China Sea served as the first fence shielding the empire from more dangerous foreign barbarians (waiyi) beyond the Middle Kingdom. Besides this
military-strategic function, borderlands also offered an outlet for landhungry migrants, dispossessed single males, and other contentious groups
from the core regions. Thus, as Peter C. Perdue points out, borderlands
could become an early diagnostic of pressures that would strike the rest
of the empire.6
According to Confucian political culture, frontiers signaled the interface
or meeting point between civilization and barbarianism. Many of them
played an important role in justifying the Middle Kingdoms expansive
power, as they were considered moral beneficiaries of the civilizing impulse from the center. Extraordinary disturbances in the fringe areas, conversely, might suggest moral decay at the political center, thus jeopardizing
its legitimacy in the eyes of Chinas tributary states and, furthermore, precipitating reform on the highest levels. Seen from this perspective, some
frontiers stood at the core of empire-building because any major challenges from them might affect the image and practices of the center.7 This
reflexive relationship entails that the seemingly orderly process of official
frontier construction could neither obscure the internal contradictions of
40
41
42
43
tion through different messianic figures. Such dramatic supernatural intervention presaged a complete demolition of the extant world order and its
violent replacement by a utopian, alternative one.
This insurrectionary trend was given new impetus in the mid-fourteenth
century when it blended with the popular doctrines of Maitreyan eschatology. Taking the kalpa ( jie) as a catastrophic but constructive turning point
in human history, this eschatology advocates the successive alterations of
the world in the name of different Buddha-saviors, of which Maitreya (the
Buddha of the Future) was the ultimate. Under this new influence, the
White Lotus religion finally became a well-established millenarian sect
that was deeply involved with antidynastic revolts. As a key organizational
vehicle for violent protest, it fueled a great many of the uprisings that, directly or indirectly, brought about the final demise of the great Yuan (1271
1368) and Ming regimes. The White Lotus sects thus became, in Richard
Sheks words, the most feared and notorious of all sectarian organizations since the Yuan dynasty. They were steadfastly condemned for heterodoxy and suppressed through most of the late imperial period but still
survived actively underground and branched into even more congregations with changing names.17
Given the persistent nature of government repression, how, then, are we
to explain the tenacity and dynamism of the White Lotus tradition as a
principal form of Chinese popular religion? A major reason was its highly
flexible sectarian teaching, especially the powerful eschatological messianism. The Bailian ideology was premised on a series of obscure conjectures
the sequential arrivals of different Buddhas to save the worldeach of
which represented an approaching change of kalpa. Such eschatological
chronology later developed into the full-fledged doctrine of three successive world stages (past-present-future) that constituted the basic salvational scheme of White Lotus belief. The onset of the new stage entailed
both an unstoppable change of kalpa and impending cataclysmic destruction throughout the temporal world.18 This sectarian ideology is thus most
powerfully conveyed by its messianic prophecy and the intervention of
immediate disasters. Such doctrinal production of social anxiety was an
indispensable tool in mobilizing great masses of followers against the state
when sociopolitical conditions were at their nadir.
This potentially explosive millenarian message, as Robert Weller argues,
resonates with the orthodox theory of the Mandate of Heaven, a core element in traditional Chinese political philosophy. As the primary means of
explaining dynastic changes, this theory justifies revolt against an unworthy
emperor by deeming it a divinely ordained mission reflecting Heavens supreme will. It should be noted that most of the time, White Lotus adherents
44
45
46
47
kalpa. Along the same line, Richard Chu differentiates between a quiet,
purely religious phase and an active, rebellious stage of Bailian activity.26 It is helpful to make such distinctions from the states vantage
point, but one should also conceptualize the two different stages of sectarian development as complementary and interchanging attributes of the
same belief system. Therefore, White Lotus sects could be at once inwardlooking and devotional, and aggressively, militantly revolutionary.27 Their
highly flexible millennial message was perpetuated through a normally
diffuse but potentially cohesive organization, thereby making believer and
rebel merely different phases of the same salvational process.
It can be argued that White Lotus believers were engaged in an eternal,
transgressive game of contentious politics that occurred at the blurred
boundary of tolerated and forbidden sectarian activities. They could readily transform peaceful claims for salvation into violent ones for selfpreservation, and vice versa, depending on their discursive construction of
the state (image and practice). In coping with the changing political pressure, the Bailian Jiao thus demonstrated, probably more than any other
Chinese popular religion, tremendous adaptability, with which it empowered itself in both occasional antidynastic uprisings and routine sectarian
reproduction.
The greatest power of this sectarian tradition lay in its extraordinary
flexibility in mediating between the universality of abstract millennial
ideas and the specificities of particular local contexts. Thanks to their volatile articulation of social anxiety and their eschatological justification of
popular protest, White Lotus adherents had an especially strong capacity
to perceive the predatory nature of state penetration and mobilize people
for self-defense. Sectarians sought a delicate balance as they peacefully
practiced their seemingly innocuous popular religion while not forsaking
the last resort of rebellion during times of great hardship. The dynamism
of the Bailian tradition, put another way, was mostly grounded in the actual or, most of the time, threatened use of violence for the purpose of resisting government persecution and defending its sectarian existence. As a
result, different White Lotus congregations could survive as if dormant
without entirely losing their capacity to mobilize believers to drastic action.28 This tenacious nature was a long-term adaptation to hostile state
policies and tough social environments.
Scholars have long noted the striking ability of the traditional Chinese
state to regulate popular religious beliefs across the huge Chinese empire.
Arthur Wolf contends that the imperial government was so potent that it
created a religion in its own image by promoting a bureaucratized version of heaven and hell that reflected Chinas sociopolitical landscape.29
48
Rebellion in Hubei
On January 11, 1796, the White Lotus uprising erupted in Zhijiang and
Yidu counties of Jingzhou prefecture, Hubei. Within two years it swept
through a large part of central-western China; but rebel forces proved unable to control the lowland corethe Jianghan plainin the northern
part of the middle Yangzi River basin. By the end of 1797, most of the
rebel forces had retreated to the Han River highlands across the provincial
border of Hubei, Shaanxi, and Sichuan. Thereafter, this mountainous frontier became the major center of operations for the roving insurgents until
their final defeat in 1805.
The White Lotus uprising occurred in Jingzhou prefecture due to the
conjunction of several contentious events and circumstances. A major precipitant was the escalating religious cases that occurred through the late
eighteenth century. From 1794 to 1795, in particular, Qianlong launched
an all-out dragnet to ferret out and apprehend Bailian leaders in six prov-
49
inces of central-western China. As one of the old emperors last campaigns and the most ruthless, this crackdown rendered a deadly blow to
the sectarian organizations in Hubei, Sichuan, and Shaanxi and threatened
their very existence.33 Several hundred White Lotus adherents were
rounded up and executed, while many more were imprisoned or brutalized. Local officials and their yamen underlings, to make it worse, took
this ferocious manhunt as a license to victimize and extort payments from
the populace. They carried out a family-by-family search; those who did
not pay the required bribe were arrested as Bailian converts, and many
were tortured to death. Injustice and cruelty reached such an extent that it
provoked widespread popular discontent, which enhanced the sects appeal and confirmed their prediction of an impending kalpic change and
disaster.34 Making haste to profit from this dire situation, White Lotus
leaders stepped up their proselytizing efforts and called for outright revolt
against state persecution. Forced to pay or die, many people became so
desperate that they rose up for self-preservation during this time of great
hardship.35
The second major incitement to armed rebellion can be attributed to the
Miao uprising of 1795, which overtaxed the states coercive capacity in
Hubei, Sichuan, and Shaanxi. Subduing this ethnic revolt required the
Qing to mobilize almost all available military forces in the three provinces,
meaning that only a ludicrously small number of imperial soldiers were
left in central-western China when the sectarian uprising broke out. This
startling lack of regular troops was especially clear in the nine rebel-afflicted
counties of Hubei, including Yidu, Yunxi, Zhuxi, Fang-xian, Baokang,
Laifeng, Donghu, Yuan-an, and Dangyang, whose average number of stationed soldiers did not exceed seventy in January 1796.36
The governments military weakness was compounded by the extortionate practices of local officials and yamen staff who utilized the Miao
campaign as another good opportunity for personal enrichment. Because
of its strategic location and proximity to the Hunan-Guizhou frontier,
Jingzhou prefecture bore an especially heavy burden of provision and corvee labor. What was more disturbing was that some rapacious state agents
even increased military surcharges by tenfold in the name of supporting
the Miao campaign. Such unscrupulous exploitation exhausted the local
communities and created great suffering among the people. The depressed
conditions were aggravated by a string of natural disasters that hit Jingzhou in the last decade of the Qianlong reign. All these produced a tinderbox of frustration and hatred toward the authorities that spawned a receptive audience for the White Lotus teachings. Making active use of the
agitated situation, sectarian congregations in Hubei underwent a rapid
50
51
52
in motivating and organizing the uprising of 1796. As the most active and
powerful sectarian participants in the revolt, they were collectively called
the Xiangyang congregation (Xiangyang jiaotuan) or Xiangyang original sect (Xiangyang laojiao). Among the hundreds of Bailian leaders,
moreover, Xiangyang natives constituted the majority group.43
The White Lotus teachings, once having reached Xiangyang from the
north China plain, spread upstream and downstream along the Han
River.44 Thanks to different messengers like wandering migrants, merchants, laborers, and priests the sectarian culture climbed up the high
mountains and flowed down into the low river valleys. However, the uprising of 1796 first broke out in neither the strategic Xiangyang prefecture
nor the recently settled, hard-to-reach Han River highlands. How to explain this rather surprising outcome?
The answers lie mainly in the two different socioeconomic structures
that the White Lotus leaders faced in developing their bases of followers in
different regions. One of these structures was the populous and tightly
clustered clan-villages on the Jianghan plain; the other being the sparsely
populated and scattered mountain communities in the highland area of
Hubei. The former often had developed strong lineages closely tied to local authorities. Along with the baojia system of household registration and
mutual surveillance, such lineages provided an effective means for bottomup social control and top-down official management. Fertile agriculture
and flourishing commerce, furthermore, supported a network of committed gentry and wealthy landlords to dominate local affairs and safeguard
social stability. All these features made the Jianghan plain more tightly
knit and less accessible to sectarian influences from the outside.45 The
White Lotus insurgents did manage to win over a handful of disaffected
landlords like Nie Renjie, but such piecemeal effort could not challenge
the paramount power of orthodox social formation in the lowlands.
In response to intensifying official persecution and venality, White Lotus
leaders in Hubei began to introduce greater urgency into their messianic
propaganda during the late 1780s. Besides predicting forthcoming cosmic
catastrophes, some of them even contemplated the idea of insurrection in
their cultural production of anxiety and terror. Further pressed by the ferocious campaign of 1794, Liu Zhixie, Bai Peixiang, Yao Zhifu, and Wang
Cong-er finally decided to act in Xiangyang on March 10, 1796.46 But the
vigilant gentry in Zhijiang and Yidu got wind of this plot and notified authorities immediately. The local officials apprehended some of the planners
and launched a fierce manhunt for the rest. To escape destruction, sect
leaders like Zhang Zhengmo and Nie Renjie were obliged to strike prematurely in Jingzhou prefecture on January 11. Consequently, the scheduled
53
uprisings went off like badly timed firecrackers that started an immediate
chain reaction.47 The initial Bailian uprising was therefore shaped by a
contingent situation rather than by careful planning. Because most government troops in Hubei were sent to squash the Miao aboriginals, the
rebels had little trouble seizing such cities as Dangyang, Baokang, and
Zhushan. But wealthy local elites, especially the civil and military shengjian
(shengyuan and jiansheng) like Luo Siyong and Luo Siqian, took the initiative of organizing militia to defend their communities against sectarian
attack.48 So the rebels could not mobilize the wealth and manpower of
lowland society, and thus never gained the momentum needed to challenge
the regime successfully.49
According to the depositions of the Bailian leaders Nie Renjie and
Xiang Yaoming, the rebel forces prepared to first seize the county seats of
Zhijiang and Yidu, followed by the prefecture cities of Jingzhou and
Xiangyang. They then planned to cross the Han River and push northward to Henan. This bold plan was later abandoned as the insurgents
proved unable to defend conquered urban centers like Dangyang, due
largely to the resistance of the gentry and other orthodox groups. Sect
leaders came to realize that they could no longer base their operations in
the lowlands and directly confront the Qing forces. Starting in September
1796, the focal area of the uprising gradually shifted northwest as rebels
swarmed into the Hubei-Shaanxi-Sichuan border region, relying on its
rugged terrain to resist the government attacks. They gathered followers
and supplies along the way while pillaging the local communities like roving bandits.50
In contrast to the close-knit clan-villages on the Jianghan plain, the
upland counties of Yunyang, Shinan, and Yichang were characterized by
atomized mountain communities and myriad frontier forces with a high
degree of autonomy. Yunyang, the easternmost part of the Han River highlands, was especially impoverished and sparsely populated, with fewer
elites and less developed agriculture. Despite relatively weak economic integration with the outside world, local people supplemented their low incomes by exporting mountain products like timber, bamboo, and tea. The
diverse populace and the lack of strong elite networks hampered the development of self-defense organizations under gentry leadership. All these
made the highland society more egalitarian, violence prone, and open to
outside influences. Its general lack of social control provided a hotbed for
the development of White Lotus sects. Scholars like Cecily McCaffrey and
K. C. Liu have already examined the initial phase of the White Lotus rebellion in western and central Hubei. So this chapter focuses on the Han
River highlands, the epicenter of the uprising from 1797 to 1805.51
54
55
shed between the north and the south. They also served as a transregional
corridor that connected Chinas western plateau, central basins, and eastern plains.55
A local phrase aptly summarizes how the highland inhabitants understood the ecological world they lived in: nine parts mountain, one part
water and farmland ( jiushan banshui banfentian). Except for a few enclosed agricultural basins like Hanzhong, the Han River highlands were
predominantly covered by two thick, primeval forests (laolin) along the
Qinling and Daba mountain belts in the early nineteenth century. According to a description by Zhuo Bingtian, a Jiaqing-era local official, the
northern stretch of these highlands was called the Nanshan Old Forest
(Nanshan Laolin, also referred to as Qinling Laolin). It extended eastward
across various counties and departments in southern Shaanxi, including Lueyang, Feng-xian, Baoji, Mei-xian, Zhouzhi, Yang-xian, Ningshaan, Xiaoyi,
Zhen-an, Shanyang, and Xunyang, until reaching Yunxi in northwestern
Hubei. As for the southern stretch of the highlands, it encompassed the
Bashan Old Forest (Bashan Laolin), which extended eastward across Ningqiang, and Baocheng of Shaanxi; Nanjiang, Tongjiang, Bazhou, Taiping, Daning, Kai-xian, Fengjie, and Wushan of Sichuan; and Ziyang, Ankang, and
Pingli of Shaanxi; until finally arriving in Zhushan, Zhuxi, Fang-xian, Xingshan, and Baokang of northwestern Hubei.56 Between the Qinling and
Bashan primeval forests lay the Han River, which cut through southern
Shaanxis major valley basins, including Hanzhong and Ankang.
The two heavily wooded areas, albeit divided, belonged to the same
ecosystem called Qinba Laolin (the Han River highlands). With altitudes
ranging from two thousand to three thousand meters, they were among
the last remaining original forest areas within China proper.57 Few officials understood these highlands better than Yan Ruyi, a capable administrator who served there in the first two decades of the nineteenth century.
In his eyes, this internal frontier on the edge of Chinas heartland was akin
to the external borderland wilderness far beyond it. A place where raging
rivers were often juxtaposed with deep gorges and dense forest, Qinba
Laolin extended over 1,600 kilometers and occupied an area of 310,000
square kilometers, straddling the border of Shaanxi, Hubei, and Sichuan.
From the states standpoint, such exceedingly difficult terrains, like the
Great Wall, provided an insuperable barrier safeguarding the three
provinces (sansheng baozhang) in central-western China.58
A tangle of provincial boundaries divided this complex mix of mountains,
forest, and rivers into three separate administrative areas that interlocked
like the teeth of a dog (quanya xiangcuo). These prescribed, rigid, and
bounded jurisdictional spaces, more of an artifact than natural necessity,
56
57
According to the provincial official Taibu, for instance, half of the population in Shaanxis Xing-an prefecture, many of whom were the White Lotus
converts, migrated from neighboring Hubei.63
The opening up of the Qinba highlands during the Ming-Qing dynasties
led to an expansion of cultivated land and the simultaneous shrinkage of
forest-covered areas. This process of frontier-making connected major agricultural areas along the upper Han River, such as Hanzhong, with the other
three key river valleys in central-western China: the Wei River valley (or
Guanzhong plain) of Shaanxi to the north, the Jianghan plain of Hubei to
the southeast, and the Chengdu plain of Sichuan to the southwest. This
process of highland development also linked the Hanzhong basin with
Nanyang, its western counterpart in Henan. Such transregional integration
accelerated over the eighteenth century as a massive wave of in-migrants
moved to the Han River highlands from all directions. Some reclaimed the
unfertile upland as pengmin (shack people); the others worked in the scattered mountain factories (shanchang) that produced wood, charcoal, iron,
58
59
60
While creating insurmountable difficulties for state control, the highland topography proved a boon to the people who inhabited the threeprovince border area. Its river-linked mountains and intricate footpaths
not only provided a primary means of regional transport but also afforded
the best natural protection for various antistate and nonstate forces. The
social ecology of the highlands made it easy for sectarians and bandits to
rise up against the state; the highlands sheer size and rugged inaccessibility also gave insurgents plenty of room to maneuver. In the words of Yan
Ruyi, there is so much violence and so little order in the three-province
border region partly because it is hard to attack and easy to defend.72
This situation even persisted into the 1930s, when Chiang Kai-sheks
Guomindang armies were trapped fighting the Communists in the same
area. Chiang considered this region the most difficult strategic area to take
and occupy in the whole country.73
The segregating effect of high mountains and long forests (gaoshan changlin), furthermore, created a multitude of murky jurisdictional interstices
that undermined and even escaped state control. Highland forces made
regular use of these ill-defined administrative boundaries to evade taxes,
engage in illegal activities, and escape government punishment. White Lotus insurgents, in particular, deliberately conducted their activities astride
two or three mountainous jurisdictions that were not in good communication with one another. The rebel leader Hu Mingyuan described his strategy
as follows: in northwest Hubei many huge mountains and intricate paths
straddle the border of Shaanxi and Sichuan. When there are more government soldiers in Sichuan and Shaanxi, we scatter into Hubei territory.
When more soldiers are stationed in Hubei, we then slip back into Sichuan
and Shaanxi. The officials never know our whereabouts.74
Unable to deal with the increasing workload within their own administrative purviews, shorthanded local authorities often turned a blind eye to
border issues and tried to shift responsibility to neighboring counties, prefectures, or provinces. This parochial vision was certainly not shared by
the emperor at the distant Forbidden City. In the midst of the White Lotus
campaign, Jiaqing often chided his field officials for failing to act beyond
their jurisdiction, thus thwarting horizontal collaboration and slowing
down suppression. He complained vehemently about such rigid political
boundaries (cijiang bijie zhi jian), since in his eyes, the three provinces
were no different from each other. But the emperor also admitted that it
would be impossible to govern the huge empire without such strict administrative demarcations.75
61
Highland Development
in the Late Qianlong Reign
To understand the highland area as well as the crises it produced, one must
go beyond a brief overview of the slow-to-change ecology and fragile state
infrastructure to get a real sense of local people and their border-crossing
experiences. Unlike the Miao frontier in the Hunan-Guizhou border, the
Han River highlands were not an ethnic borderland, as few aboriginal nonHan people lived in the area. This densely forested region, as Eduard Vermeer maintains, was actually among the latest areas in China proper to be
intensely colonized. Despite intermittent settlement since the Han dynasty,
the first strong tide of reclamation did not start there until the 1420s. Over
the ensuing two centuries, a large number of land-starved peasants from
adjacent provinces streamed into the Qinba highlands, opened the virgin
mountains for cultivation, and settled down as laomin (original residents).
But this vast, persistent influx of drifting people was brought to an end
by the late Ming peasant uprisings, which were centered in this area and
decimated most of its population. The subsequent dynastic transition further turned the Han River highlands into a wild, unsettled territory of
central-western China. But such a bleak picture started to change in the late
Kangxi reign, when internal migration reemerged as a major force of frontier transformation under government encouragement.76
This new assault on the highlands reached its peak in the closing decades
of the Qianlong reign. From the 1770s onward, economic downturn, overcrowding, and natural disasters in the basins and valleys of central-south
China provoked a huge exodus of indigent settlers into the three-province
border region. The Shaangan governor-general Bi Yuan noted that these
migrants first came to the upper highlands around the year 1773. In 1778
alone, over 100,000 refugees from Hubei and Hunan arrived in Hanzhong
prefecture in southern Shaanxi as xinmin (new people).77 According to
Yan Ruyis on-the-spot investigation, 7080 percent of Hanzhongs population were immigrants in 1814. Some years earlier, this percentage had
been as high as 8090 percent in the Shaanxi-Sichuan border area. As for
Sichuan as a whole, 85 percent of its population had been nonnatives during the early nineteenth century. Astounding as they were, these numbers
might still be underestimations, for some newly arrived kemin (guest
people) did not appear on the official registers due to their mobile way of
life and scattered pattern of settlement.78
Due to this massive wave of in-migration, the population of the Han
River highlands expanded exponentially throughout the eighteenth cen-
62
63
64
Pengmin
These were upland migrants who eked out precarious livings on marginal
fields carved out of forested hillsides.87 Attracted by vast untilled land and
low taxation rates, as Yan Ruyi observed, they filtered into the threeprovince border region from crowded lowlands and engaged primarily in
a sort of slash-and-burn agriculture. These specialists in highland reclamation felled trees to open fields while collecting branches, straw, or
reeds to make rude shacks (peng) for temporary living. This is how they
got the unflattering name shack people. With little property, most pengmin cultivated New World crops like maize and sweet potatoes; others
became wage workers (changmin) in mountain factories set up by rich
merchants and big landlords. Their specialized food production was not
merely for self-sufficiency but also met the growing demand of the highland workforce in the iron and paper factories. As the provincial official
Changlin observed, shack people were scattered widely over the mountain ranges, and there were usually no more than twenty households
within ten li. Owing to the quick exhaustion and easy erosion of deforested mountain soils, shifting swidden cultivation was crucial to the profitability of highland reclamation. Hence the shack people often moved
every three to five years, sometimes several times a year, to look for new
fields suitable for farming. Such physical mobility, along with their market
dependency, became the most distinguishing characteristic of the pengmin.
Lacking villages or kinship organizations that could bind them together in
a precarious social ecology, these migrants had to establish sworn brotherhood or patron-client relationships with other powerful highland forces
like the guolu bandits and Bailian sects. It was extremely difficult for the
local authorities to monitor, let alone rein in, these highly dispersed and
mobile groups through traditional control mechanisms, like the baojia and
gentry-led militia systems widely used in settled agricultural regions.88
65
Without a stable community to fall back on, pengmin are thus best
understood as a transient phase of settlers on the shifting frontier, rather
than as a permanent social class.89 They formed part of the empire-wide
floating population of the Qianlong reign, whose main destination was
mountainous internal peripheries like the Han River highlands. The original shack people, as Sow-Theng Leong and Stephen Averill asserted, had
appeared in Guangdong and Fujian during the mid-sixteenth century.
They were pushed out of the southeast coast into the mountainous regions
of Jiangxi and the lower Yangzi. Leong focused on those highland specialists of Hakka origin fanning out across southern and central China from
the late Ming onward.90 But this migratory wave rarely reached the upper
Han River, which was mainly populated by a newer group of immigrants
from Hubei and Hunan who accounted for about half of the highland
population.91
By and large, officials like Yan Ruyi viewed the shack people with ambivalence. On the one hand their migration up into the sparsely populated
hills eased the crowding in lowland areas. Their backbreaking work in
swidden agriculture, moreover, turned hilly wasteland into a valuable
resource and brought it onto the tax rolls. On the other hand excessive,
unregulated highland reclamation not only caused ecological damage (like
deforestation and landslides) but also posed a tremendous challenge for
sociopolitical control. The development of mountain factories attracted
various unstable elements into the highlands to work as hired laborers or
pengmin. Unable to keep track of them, local authorities had the perpetual
fear that these dispersed bands of mostly unaccompanied males would set
off violent conflicts with nearby lowland communities. Still more worrisome was the possibility that they might shelter bandits and rebels or even
join forces with them against the state. As the local administrator Yue
Zhenchuan remarked, pengmin had turned the mountain factories into
the habitual hideout (chaoxue) of White Lotus rebels.92 Depending on
their economic situation, like the south China pirates, the shack people
fluctuated in and out of their legal occupations as opportunities arose. Due
to such uncontrollable mobility, they played a vital role in transmitting
sectarian messages to scattered highland groups and in facilitating their
violent collaboration. During the late Qianlong reign, as Averill pointed
out, the Qing government stepped up its efforts to control the pengmin,
including following the Ming policy of closing off some mountain areas to
any kind of settlement. Such heavy-handed measures had little chance of
success due to the weak state apparatus in the area. Actually they had the
opposite effect, feeding endemic unrest in the highlands by forcing pengmin to ally with the sectarians and guolu bandits.93
66
Guolu Bandits
Growing disorder and limited law enforcement accounted for the perpetual existence of the guolu bandits, a well-organized and dangerous force in
the three-province border region. The upland area of northeast Sichuan, in
particular, was well known for these warlike, obstreperous brigands. Originally deserted imperial soldiers, they first sprang from the stalled military
campaigns against the Jinchuan tribes in western Sichuan (especially from
the muguomu defeat in 1773) and later thrived in the hostile social ecology of the highland area.94
As roving mountain outlaws, guolu bandits were largely unattached,
property-less, and desperate youths united by fraternal ideology. More
specifically, they consisted of erstwhile soldiers, unemployed pengmin, and
local undesirables who had been driven to lawlessness by war, natural disasters, and governmental injustices. In some areas, even yamen underlings
and salt smugglers were part of the guolu brotherhood association. Thanks
to their military expertise and manifold constituency, the guolu bandits
were an effective fighting force that coordinated disparate groups and terrorized the highland society: raiding stores, robbing traveling merchants,
collecting protection money, and holding hostages for ransom. The audacity of these operations alarmed the Qing government and prompted it to
implement a harsher policy toward this paramilitary organization in the
1770s. A decade later, Emperor Qianlong ratcheted up his repression campaigns, following the suggestion of the Sichuan governor-general Fukangan
that guolu bandits be completely eradicated. Facing increasing government pressure, these desperate brigands had little choice but to ally with
other highland forces, like the sectarians, while stepping up their predatory operations.95
Banditry in the three-province border region was a complex phenomenon. While disrupting local order, it offered many frontier people an avenue for survival in the turbulent environment. Sometimes highland people
rejected and fought these robbers, but in most cases, as Yan Ruyi observed,
they sought to negotiate and coexist with this necessary evil. Lacking
adequate protection from the state, many merchants and landlords paid
regular protection fees to guolu bandits to purchase immunity from their
future depredations. Some local elites even established sworn-brother ties
with this protection racket to enlist support in case of violent conflicts
with other forces.96 The guolu banditry, indeed, should not be viewed simply as a criminal venture or security nuisance, for it performed some of the
states functions by contributing to a viable order in the highlandsthough
67
as is typical of such operations, the protection they sold was against the
violence they themselves committed. (Such interconnection of predation
and protection was also a characteristic of the piracy crisis across the South
China Sea.)
As a crucial means of survival, communal violence remained a constant
feature of the highland social ecology. The White Lotus converts collaborated with bandits, ruffians, and outlaws in a pragmatic attempt to bolster
their armed forces. The groups that specialized in violent action, rather than
the salvation-oriented sects, formed the military backbone of the rebellion.
In allying with such unsavory forces, the sectarians became addicted to their
roving bandit mentality and engaged in ever more predatory behavior,
which alienated local support. As for the guolu bandits, they used the cover
of the White Lotus rebellion to undertake yet more robbery and extortion,
further damaging the reputation of Bailian sects.97
68
69
ened counterfeits in outlying mountain factories, notably in the hardscrabble interprovincial region of Hubei, Shaanxi, and Sichuan. According to
the local official Yue Zhenchuan, counterfeit coins proliferated after 1785
and flowed out of the Han River highlands like a raging flood.102 They not
only were widely used in this region but also filtered into the national market in exchange for various goods, thereby contributing to an expanding
network of domestic trade.
To alleviate the problem of currency scarcity, as Man-houng Lin points
out, Qing authorities largely tolerated unauthorized casting of copper
coins during the early and mid-Qianlong reign.103 But this policy was
gradually reversed in the late eighteenth century as the state began cracking down on private minting throughout the empire, especially across the
three-province border region. After capturing over two hundred counterfeiters in 1794, the Qing court determined to further pursue their effort to
extirpate this illegal business in the next two years. Avaricious local officials and yamen underlings, turning this campaign into another opportunity to enrich themselves, extorted payments from frontier people in the
name of searching for counterfeiters and their illicit products, driving the
latter further into the arms of the sectarian rebels. It is worth noting that
the states White Lotus campaign had a clear economic effect on this illegal
yet lucrative mountain business. Due to the governments skyrocketing
spending on military suppression and on postwar reconstruction after the
campaign, the early Jiaqing period saw a massive influx of silver taels into
the Han River highlands. Consequently, as Jiaqing admitted in June 1802,
it caused a depreciation of silver vis--vis copper coins in this area, making
counterfeiting even more profitable and widespread.104
Though difficult to quantify due to a dearth of sources, it seems that
during the late eighteenth century a large portion of the highland populace
had come to depend on salt smuggling or coin counterfeiting to make ends
meet. The steady growth of the two illicit businesses was abetted by the
states weak presence in the highlands as well as the incongruous boundaries between commercial and administrative structures. Sectarians made
active use of the secret trading and marketing networks of smugglers and
counterfeiters, thereby extending their influence throughout the border
region. Increasingly strident prohibitions of these border-crossing activities posed a dire threat to the highland communities because they directly
impinged on the livelihood of the various nonstate and antistate groups.
I propose that such nonstate activities as salt smuggling should be understood in the context of the two interactive mechanisms of sociopolitical
control: one was irrational political regulation based on the prescribed
bureaucratic structure that sought to territorialize and monopolize the
70
71
failures in the Han River highlands underlined the limitations and vulnerabilities of the empire, forcing the court to retreat from its ambitious plans
for frontier control and to accept a more conservative social order. During
the White Lotus campaign, for instance, Emperor Qianlong grudgingly
eased up on his draconian policies toward the guolu bandits and salt
smugglers in Sichuan. Jiaqing, in his turn, acknowledged that the government could not continue to prohibit settlement in the Qinling forest of
southern Shaanxi. Instead he employed a policy of encouraging and supporting more highland reclamation and economic transformation in the
area. Such pragmatic policy changes, to be sure, were facilitated by capable local administrators like Yan Ruyi and Gong Jinghan (discussed in
later chapters).106
Hence the highlands in crisis reinforced the negotiated nature of the
Qing state by reconfiguring its relationship to frontier society. What happened in these borderlands, furthermore, had far-reaching effects on how
empire-building worked in other peripheries or even core areas. The Han
River highlands and the Sino-Vietnamese water world thus played a more
important role in the construction of the state than the conventional literature portrays. Together, they forced the Jiaqing court to rethink its frontier
policies, thus precipitating a timely retreat from Qianlongs unsustainable
efforts at state control over those unruly spaces. Such borderlands also
carried an important symbolic meaning for the authorities. According to
Confucian political culture, the lack of virtue at the imperial center would
often unleash a wave of popular protest that was often strongest on the
peripheries.107 While a successfully executed frontier campaign aided
empire-building, unsubdued borderland forces jeopardized the states image and even threatened its existence. In order to maintain its legitimacy
and hegemony, ultimately the political center needed the compliance of
fringe regions and those who lived there.
On the whole, there were three distinct yet interacting forms of social
resistance against the intruding state in the Han River highlands. Whereas
such nonpredatory forces as salt smugglers and coin counterfeiters represented the victory of economic survival over bureaucratic control, predatory groups like the guolu bandits signified a military challenge to the
states monopoly of coercive power. The third form of resistance, a largely
ideological one represented by the sectarian groups, could readily transform into the other two types of protest and ally with them, thus posing
the most formidable challenge to the imperial state. These three kinds of
frontier forces, most of the time, would not directly and openly challenge
the state. How, then, are we to make sense of their increased collaboration
during the White Lotus rebellion? Militant organizations and radicalized
72
sectarian ideas, to be sure, offered two major mechanisms of highland mobilization. But I maintain that intensified government pressure played a
vital role in transforming such scattered, hidden resistance into a more
organized frontier revolt against the state.
The long eighteenth century saw tremendous expansion of the Qing
state power into the border regions on all fronts.108 For a long time, however, the Han River highlands had developed in relative freedom and
resisted attempts by the government to increase its local administrative
presence and to suppress unorthodox sectarian network.109 After incorporating such external borderlands as Tibet, Xinjiang, and Mongolia in the
1770s, Emperor Qianlong gradually shifted his focus to unruly internal
frontiers like the Han River highlands, attempting to tighten up central
control of such nonstate spaces within China proper. In 1782, for instance,
the authorities began to conduct a decade-long cadastral survey in five hill
counties of southern Shaanxi, trying to bring their hidden land under government taxation. Meanwhile, as noted, the state also carried out more harsh
policies toward guolu bandits, pengmin, salt smugglers, and coin counterfeiters that were intended to curb or even outlaw their activities.110 Such
intensifying efforts drove these highland forces into the arms of sectarians
and galvanized them to rise up together against the state. By the same token, William Lavely and R. Bin Wong note that the White Lotus uprising
was a defensive reaction to increased state efforts to assert political control over this border region.111 To better understand this event, I shall
briefly elucidate the proselytizing process of the Bailian sects across the
Han River highlands.
73
74
To facilitate their proselytizing efforts, local sect leaders like Song Zhiqing,
Wang Yinghu, and Bai Peixiang catered to the needs of the frontier people
by emphasizing the radicalizing symbolism of White Lotus teachings and
by adopting more flexible preaching strategies. Without centralized leadership and established sectarian tradition, for instance, they relied less on
structured networks, unifying doctrine, and detailed written scriptures like
Baojuan and sutras. Instead itinerant Shouyuan masters tried to minimize
ritual and simplify religious messages by propagating a great assortment of
sacred chants (lingwen), sect watchwords (koujue), and mantras (zhouyu)
that reflected their own apocalyptic imaginations.115
This word-of-mouth transmission of short, vernacular, and often rhymed
scriptures was the central proselytizing tactic of local Bailian sects, which
showcases their creative adaptations to volatile highland society and excessive state persecution.116 The eschatological conjecture of impending
kalpic crises conveyed through these readily understandable chants constituted the core teachings of White Lotus sectarianism in Hubei. For instance, one koujue circulating before the 1796 rebellion reads in part:
On the tenth day of the third month, there will be a dark wind which
kills countless people. Only sectarian members can survive the disaster.
Another koujue further depicted the horrible situation when the cosmic
catastrophe came upon the earth: At that time, both heaven and earth
will be totally dark, neither the sun nor the moon will be shining anymore.
People will die due to warfare, flood, fire, or strange diseases. Their wives
and daughters will be raped. Great changes will take place under the
heaven. Only those who join our sect can survive.117 By transforming
abstruse messianic ideas into vivid imagery and concrete objects of worship, these simple, creed-like incantations found a wide resonance among
uncultured adherents and social malcontents struggling against state repression in harsh frontier environments. In reciting such sacred texts with
awe, hard-pressed highlanders aspired to survive the cataclysm and enter a
new millennium.
While highlighting the imminency of eschatological calamities, sect
leaders in Hubei showed a strong concern to make the way to salvation as
simple, clear, and quick as possible. The captured Yunyang master Zeng
Shixing testified that whenever a lingwen is taught, a teacher-disciple relationship is formed. Since the ritual of initiation often involved no more
than a few people, it was relatively easy to join a White Lotus congregation or to start a new sect branch in the highlands. Consequently, many
sect generations could be created in a short time, which further contributed to the centrifugal process of organizational fragmentation.118 Pierre
Trenchant, a French missionary who traveled extensively in central China,
75
76
77
78
to local conceptions of social justice and state legitimacy that were rooted
in the highly autonomous frontier order. Thanks to these bottom-up allocations of values, the highland society had been successful in organizing
the frontier people against state intrusion by foregrounding the issue of
official repression and righteous resistance.
It is necessary to further conceptualize the legitimating universe that
various highland forces used to justify their autonomy and their local patterns of power. Inspired by Duaras study of north China, I coin the concept
cultural nexus of nonstate power to denote this constellation of cultural
resources that promoted the attainment of negotiation and coexistence
among various defiant groups. At the heart of this category lies the basic
assumption that a standardized framework of state authority and its Confucian agenda for local rule were not accepted by most highland forces:
that is, the imperial government had failed to create any framework of
identification and communication linking it with the border region. Consequently, the upland society was marked by the extraordinary degree to
which antistate values and beliefs permeated popular consciousness and
sustained frontier protest. By the end of the Qianlong reign, the Han River
highlands had become a sort of nonstate cultural space in which heterodox
ideas or rebellious ideology overshadowed that of Confucian orthodoxy. It
is worth noting that White Lotus teachings played a vital role in enriching
and strengthening the cultural nexus of nonstate power, which in turn facilitated the propagation of sectarian ideas and the rise of frontier protest.
The combination of various contentious forces and their cultural nexus
of nonstate power constituted a highly autonomous zone of frontier politics that was controlled by neither formal state power nor informal gentry
authority. I label the Han River highlands nonstate space mostly because neither of the two could successfully cope with the pressure of frontier transformation. Instead the White Lotus sects and their flexible messages filled the interstices, providing guidance to the highlanders in
handling the challenges posed by harsh social ecology and excessive state
intrusion. To assert the existence of such a nonstate space, to be sure, is not
to deny the tenuous presence of the state apparatus and its power but to
point out how that space fostered a sense of uncontrollability, because it
nullified whatever weak capacity the state had to penetrate border regions
to effect change, thus highlighting the states acute dilemma of intensifying
frontier control and rising social protest.
To fully understand peasant politics, it is necessary, as Daniel Little
maintains, to provide an account of the local processes through which
group identity is formed and through which members of groups come to
identify themselves as political actors.131 There can be no doubt that
79
frontier forces, relations, and networks came under severe pressure as the
late Qianlong state ratcheted up assaults on sectarians, salt smugglers,
counterfeiters, and bandits. In response, these highlanders strengthened
the cultural nexus of nonstate power by expanding their border-crossing
activities, most of which had been transformed from nonmilitant to violent ones under deteriorating conditions. Growing imperial pressure, in
addition, spawned increasingly predatory and unjust practices on the part
of local authorities, further jeopardizing the states legitimacy. All these
changes boiled over into even stronger antistate sentiment, which catalyzed the radicalization of White Lotus sects and facilitated their proselytizing process. Ultimately they paved the way for the rise of frontier protests that demanded changes in the reckless state policies.
The frontier peoples resistance to the centralizing thrust of the state
needed organizational frameworks and cultural-religious justification,
both of which were provided by highland sectarianism. The White Lotus
ideology and congregations had become a key symbolic unifying force
sustaining this frontier society, as well as its cultural nexus of nonstate
power. In making sense of what was going on around them, highland
people appropriated the cultural resources and religious symbols at their
disposal to adapt to changing circumstances.132 Apart from providing a
social network of mutual support, White Lotus believers fostered a common understanding based on their cultural production of social protest
that resonated with the contentious tradition of highland societies. The
sectarian ideology not only gave legitimacy to nonstate or antistate forces
whose positions could not be defended through such conventional means
as petitions and lawsuits but also provided a strategic basis for their political and military mobilization against the state.
On the whole, ones perception of the state matters greatly in formulating strategies for political action.133 This explains why the imperial Chinese state remained so obsessed with ideological control by attempting to
impose its own authoritative allocation of values. The efflorescence of
highland White Lotus groups indicates their growing sense of insecurity in
the frontier environment and their disappointment with the worldly situation in which they found themselves. This efflorescence also points up the
more active role sectarian leaders played in addressing such urgent needs
as how to survive state repression. Great crises, in turn, made the Bailian
ideology more appealing, given its powerful eschatological messianism
based on kalpic change and cosmic catastrophe. Extensively woven into
the fabric of frontier society, I would argue, White Lotus beliefs served as
a matrix where borderland people could reflect on local maladministration, articulate their anxieties, and make demands for radical political
80
Chapter Three
82
of the Jiaqing court over inland and coastal security were closely tied together. This chapter, like the previous one, brings peripheries to central stage
by highlighting the multiple constructions placed on the nonstate space
as well as the active role of indigenous people in frontier-making and
empire-building.
Let us start with a captured pirate handbill submitted to the Jiaqing
emperor by the Liangguang governor-general, Jiqing, who presided over
the two provinces of Guangdong and Guangxi. The following excerpt affords us a rare glimpse into the perceived correlation between the south
China pirates and White Lotus rebels:
[During Heshens regency], all the high officials flocked to him and asked for
his patronage. As a result, people are still living in great misery. It is time that
the True God descended to save the populace from the abyss of suffering. We
should follow the Heavens will and rise up to restore the Ming dynasty. On
May 1, 1801, the following order has been distributed to our brothers on the
sea in Guangdong and Guangxi: we will gather together all the ships on April
15, 1802, and move to conquer the two provinces; then it is our plan to occupy the Qing maritime customs and use their financial resources to support
our great cause; later on we would join forces with the [White Lotus] brothers in Yunnan, Sichuan, Shaanxi, Hubei, and Henan provinces; thereupon we
will take Mengjin (in Henan) and hold a grand congregation to commemorate our great victory.1
This inflammatory leaflet suggests that pirates were aware of the manysided crises confronted by the Qing and tried to manipulate them to their
own advantage. They laid out an ambitious plan to join forces with their
White Lotus brothers to overthrow the alien Manchu rule and restore
the Chinese Ming dynasty. Even though such direct collaboration never
materialized, it demonstrates the necessity of juxtaposing the two crises as
a dramatic combination of challenges confronting the Manchu regime.
The White Lotus uprising, along with the concomitant Miao revolt, allowed south China piracy to flourish by drawing the states gaze and resources away from coastal problems. The court was clearly less concerned
about the faraway maritime violence than about the threat of inland rebels
much closer to Beijing. It not only refused to spend money strengthening
the navy but sucked funds from Guangdong to help pay soaring military
expenses in the interior.2 By October 1801, the province had sent several
million silver taels to other crisis-torn regions in seven installments. Tens
of thousands of soldiers were redeployed from the southeast coast to battle the insurgents in central-western China.3 As the British observed in
1802, the [Chinese] authorities could give little attention to petty piracies, as they had for some years been engaged in the suppression of numer-
83
ous rebellions in many parts of the Empire. Sea bandits were able to exploit
the situation until the end of the sectarian uprising in 1805.4
84
85
The renowned pirate leader and Ming loyalist Zheng Chenggong (Koxinga) captured Taiwan from the Dutch East Indies Company, turning the
island into a maritime trading state and the stronghold of anti-Qing resistance.13 Under his capable command, dispersed petty pirates grew into a
sophisticated, powerful organization that fused raiding with insurgency
and commerce. The antidynastic character of these activities added a new
sense of political urgency to the threat of the early-Qing piracy crisis. Going even further than its Ming counterpart, the desperate Manchu court
banned both overseas and coastal trade in 1652. This harsh but ultimately
unavailing policy aimed to cut the Taiwan-based Zheng regime off from
its support on the mainland. In 1662, the newly enthroned Kangxi emperor instituted a draconian policy of forced evacuation, requiring littoral
dwellers in south China to relocate thirty kilometers inland after destroying everything behind them. This scorched-earth measure successfully prevented clandestine trade, thus cutting Koxingas supply line and undermining the resource base of his commercial empire.14 With the final collapse of
the rebel regime, Taiwan came under Qing control in 1683. The unintended price of this harsh policy was the Kangxi depression, which reduced the silver circulation, slowed down the coastal economy, and severed China from the maritime world for two decades.15
Soon after bringing Taiwan into his fold, the pragmatic Kangxi began
dramatically scaling back sea restrictions. To encourage and institutionalize maritime trade, he set up four customs administrations (haiguan) in the
coastal regions of Guangdong, Fujian, Zhejiang, and Jiangsu from 1683 to
1685. As both overseas and domestic junk trade increased, Chinas coastal
economy recovered and expanded greatly throughout the eighteenth century. These favorable changes, unsurprisingly, furnished ample opportunities for small-scale, parasitic maritime predation. Yet such violent activities, unlike their mid-Ming and early-Qing counterparts, rarely crossed the
dangerous threshold from petty to professional piracy and thus posed little
threat to either government or commerce. With trade open, legal, and promoted, piracy was no longer the most crucial and viable means for seaborne commerce. Therefore, no great merchant-pirate like Zheng Chenggong emerged in this period who had the incentive and capability to
integrate the free-for-all maritime predations.16
The third and the last major wave of piratical violence came in the early
1790s and ended in 1810. After a century of relative peace and stability,
this period saw the rise of large-scale pirate leagues that pillaged and terrorized the south China coast. For purposes of analysis, I further divide
this upsurge into two phases, demarcated by the demise of the Tay Son
regime in 1802. In the first stage, maritime predation in Guangdong and
86
Fujian was directly supported by the newly unified Vietnamese regime that
emerged from the Tay Son rebellion of the 1770s. Secret sponsorship by
this outside power integrated numerous bands of Chinese pirates into several large, well-equipped fleets operating from bases along the Gulf of
Tonkin, a shared water zone between the Qing and Annam. On behalf of
their foreign patron, these naval mercenaries swarmed back to China
and pillaged coastal communities and shipping. This maritime upheaval
stemmed above all from political changes within the broader tributary
system and furthermore signaled a veiled Vietnamese challenge to the
China-centered world order.17 Detailed discussion will be provided in
Chapter 7; for now, suffice it to say that these sea robbers, like freefloating resources, were used by foreign rulers to aid their state-making at
the supranational level.
After the breakdown of the Tay Son regime in 1802, Guangdong and
Fujian pirates were driven back to China by the newly established Nguyen
state (18021945). This dramatic change inaugurated the latter stage of
the third piracy wave. Notwithstanding their loss of outside patron, protector, and safe haven, the surviving Chinese pirates had gained invaluable
military experience and political savvy from their decade-long mercenary
fighting. This transnational collaboration, like a vigorous training program, united them into larger, more formidable confederations under the
command of such pirate chiefs as Zheng Yi, Cai Qian, and Zhu Fen. The
latter two even formed an alliance from 1806 to 1808, trying to set up a
maritime regime in Taiwan. These efforts failed due to rising internal conflict and government suppression.18
Foreign captives furnished invaluable eyewitness accounts of the pirates
as well as their organizations and activities. Richard Glasspoole, fourth officer of the British East India Company (EIC) ship Marquis of Ely, was
taken hostage by a fleet of pirates near Canton (Guangzhou) on September
17, 1809. According to his close observation, the sea marauders number
augmented so rapidly, that at the period of my captivity they were supposed to amount to near seventy thousand men, eight hundred large vessels, and nearly a thousand small ones, including row-boats. They were divided into five squadrons, distinguished by different coloured flags: each
squadron commanded by an admiral, or chief; but all under the orders of
A-juo-chay [Zheng Yi Sao, Zheng Yis wife].19 After the collapse of the Tay
Son power, these pirates avoided the Sino-Vietnamese water world and established their headquarters in Canton, Xiamen, Macao, Chaozhou, and
Taiwan. They even defiantly set up tax bureaus (shuiju) or financial outposts in these politico-economic centers to collect the tribute (protection
money) and ransom payments that became their major source of revenue.
87
In the meantime, sea robbers also used such agencies to conspire with soldiers, yamen underlings, and officials who were on their payrolls.20
An equally striking feature of these pirates was their ability to penetrate littoral society by establishing protection rackets spanning both sea
and land. They not only collected annual or semiannual set fees from
merchant vessels and coastal communities but also issued safety certificates (piaodian) or tickets of immunity stamped by pirate chiefs. These
sea bandits used formidable military power to honor their guarantees,
punish those who were noncompliant, and defend their territory of control. Since all ships without license became fair targets, scarcely a junk
dared leave port without first paying the pirates protection money against
attack. Thanks to this routine, systematic, and terror-based monopoly of
both protection and violence, the pirates successfully regularized their
piratical-financial operations and made them an institutionalized professional business.21 In addition, through their outright use of terror and
extortion they gained firm control over many sea lanes, coastal villages
and even interior waterways. By the end of 1805, for instance, they had
virtually dominated Guangdongs salt trade by forcing 98.5 percent of its
official salt boats into their highly regularized extortion racket.22 As the
British EIC official observed, a fleet of Salt Junks arrived from the Westwards, having been convoyed by a squadron of the Ladrone Vessels; it is
affirmed each Boat paid 200 Dollars for this protection and permission to
pass unmolested. Sir John Francis Davis, the second governor of Hong
Kong, also commented: At the height of their power they levied contributions on most of the towns along the coast, and spread terror up the
river to the neighborhood of Canton. The situation became so precarious that even European merchants were obliged to negotiate with the sea
bandits for safety in this area.23
Acting like a virtual state within the state, the formidable piracy confederation, or piratical republic, as foreign observers called it, had its
own fleets, officers, and tax bureaus in imitation of the Qing imperial
regime. The confederation, moreover, openly infringed on the prerogatives of the authorities by mimicking, usurping, and privatizing some of
their functions.24 Along with the White Lotus rebellion, the south China
piracy greatly reinforced the negotiated nature of Qing state power in its
various border areas, directly bringing about a state pullback during the
Jiaqing reign.
A contemporary Qing official likened the wide, constant existence of
piratical violence to the foam of the sea. This existence resulted partly
from a time-honored tradition of local tolerance, due to many coastal residents need to rely on this tactic to survive in a harsh frontier environment.
88
By and large, professional sea bandits like Cai Qian and Zhu Fu seem to
have been scrupulous in abiding by the terms of their protection documents. It was said that whenever a fishing boat with a safe-conduct pass
was mistakenly attacked, the pirate chief would have the plundered goods
returned to the owner with a compensation of 500 Spanish dollars.25 In
such circumstances most merchants considered it more advisable to hand
over ocean taxes (yangshui) to the sea robbers than to the similarly predacious but less reliable local officials.26 The pirates thus kept a close relationship with local maritime society, as well as the overland networks it
relied on. As for the Qing officials, they were increasingly frustrated by
this sort of illicit collaboration and by the lack of organized resistance at
the grassroots levels.
Maritime predation at this stage, furthermore, can also be called what
John L. Anderson terms intrinsic piracy. Its wide scope and profound
impact meant that piracy had become a pervasive force deeply integrated
into the water frontier and maritime society. Whenever necessary, large
numbers of sailors and fishermen became sea bandits, supported by local
people from all walks of life. As Antony explains, because tens of thousands of people on both land and water came to depend on piracy, either
directly or indirectly, for their living, it quickly became a self-sustaining
enterprise and, in fact, a significant and even intrinsic feature of south
Chinas seafaring world. Like salt smuggling and coin counterfeiting in
the Han River highlands, piracy provided work to countless people who
could not be fully absorbed into the prevailing labor market. By this point,
predation had become de facto or de jure a part of the commercial or fiscal functioning of an organized community.27 Any attempt by the state to
interfere with that activity impinged not only on the autonomy of the sea
frontier but also on the local peoples survival tactics. Such a symbiotic
relationship between sea bandits and littoral society constituted the nonstate nexus of power that in turn sustained maritime raiding.
While piracy did apparently upset the normal operations of legitimate
trade, it also fostered a vibrant shadow economy that contributed to local commercial expansion and the circulation of goods throughout the
mid-Qing period. In particular, it supplied littoral people with scarce goods
at affordable prices and expanded the network of distribution by opening
up new markets, some of which were clandestine and illicit.28 For just this
reason, sea bandits themselves called their predatory practices only a
transshipping of goods. By pumping sizable amounts of goods and
money into local economies, piracy not only allowed marginalized coastal
dwellers to make ends meet but also incorporated many of the poorer,
isolated coastal communities into the larger commercial world.29
89
Under the conjoined leadership of Cai Qian, Zhu Fen, Zheng Yis wife,
and Zhang Bao, pirates dominated almost the entire Guangdong coast and
reached the summit of their power in 1805. But their good fortune did not
last long. Like the White Lotus rebels, sea bandits depended on links with
the local populace to marshal necessary manpower and resources. Thus,
when Bailing, the Liangguang governor-general, began enforcing a rigorous embargo in 1809, pirates were no longer able to observe their operating codes and to honor their safety certificates. To procure food and other
supplies, they had to raid deeper than ever into the interior waterways and
carry out indiscriminate depredations. Such aggressive attacks in the heartland of the Pearl River delta not only hammered a wedge between the
desperate pirates and their overland supporters but also worked to unite
local communities with the state in the campaign against sea bandits.30 As
a consequence, the long-established nexus of nonstate power was endangered and broken.
In addition to the emergence of strong community defenses, the pirate
confederation also was enfeebled by growing internal discord among its
top leaders, especially that between Zhang Bao and Guo Podai. As the pirate captive Richard Glasspoole commented, this extraordinary character
[Zhang Bao] would have certainly shaken the foundation of the government, had he not been thwarted by the jealousy of the second in command
[Guo Podai] who declared his independence. Capitalizing on the internal
discord, Bailing further divided pirates through a series of co-optation
campaigns that offered gracious pardons and generous rewards to those
who surrendered. Guo Podai readily capitulated, along with his flotilla of
126 pirate ships and eight thousand men. Overjoyed, the governor-general
accepted Guos submission and made him a naval officer. By then, Emperor Jiaqing had come to terms with the fact that his decrepit marine
forces could never wipe out the pirate fleets and thus a nonmilitary solution of compromise had to be found. On March 9, 1810, he issued a proclamation of great amnesty to the remaining sea bandits, pardoning all
their crimes and welcoming them back as loyal subjects of the empire.31
After weeks of tense negotiation, with the Portuguese serving as intermediaries, the Qing managed to secure the defections of 7,043 pirateshalf of
the remaining sea banditsabout 10 percent of whom later joined the
imperial navy and fought against their erstwhile comrades.32 This marked
the end of the golden age of Chinese piracy.
90
91
The South China Sea is a vast body of water located between the southern coast of China and the northwestern part of Southeast Asia. This
semienclosed sea connects with the Pacific and Indian oceans; 90 percent
of its total circumference is taken up by land belonging to various political entities. From the Ming dynasty on, it became an increasingly integrated
trading region woven together by the regular and irregular itineraries of the
Chinese and foreign vessels.35 The inherent unity of the South China Sea,
therefore, long rested on its complex trading networks, which continued to
prevail despite the increasing interference of political borders.
My focus here is on the northwestern reach of the South China Sea as
well as its complex interactions with the surrounding ocean and land space.
In more specific terms, this area extends southwest from the ZhejiangFujian maritime boundary and then stretches across the Taiwan Strait
down to the mouth of the Pearl River delta. Flowing around the Leizhou
peninsula and Chinas largest island, Hainan, the South China Sea further
flanks the Sino-Vietnamese border in the Gulf of Tonkin down to the Mekong delta. The Chinese section of this transnational water world, more
specifically, is enclosed by the seaward parts of Guangdong and Fujian
provinces that were located within the two Skinnerian macroregions of
Lingnan and the Southeast coast. The following section will outline the
basic social ecology of the two seaborne provinces. It focuses on people
who took to the sea to fish and pillage, emphasizing their complex relationship with the ocean space and with the government.
Guangdong
In the eyes of Qing officials, Guangdong was the most important part of
the empires maritime frontier, due to its unique topography, strategic location, and huge maritime territory. This southernmost province, as the Liangguang governor-general Lu Kun wrote in 1828, consists of hills and
rivers blended together, and borders on foreign countries.36 A tangled
mass of mountains and hills occupies the majority of the provinces territory, except for the Pearl River delta in the center. The towering Nanling
mountain range, running from west to east, separates central China (dominated by the Yangzi River) from south China (dominated by the Pearl
River) and then falls to the edge of the vast coastal area. The resulting hilly
surface is deeply cut and smoothed by the largest waterway system of the
province, comprising the West River as well as its two tributaries, the
North and East rivers. As they rush toward the South China Sea, these interconnecting rivers converge in the Pearl River estuary and help create the
92
93
94
95
Vietnamese and Chinese sea bandits used this border town as an important hideout and smuggling base.44
Jiangping was bounded in the east by Bailongwei, an isolated, mountainous island lying in the center of the Gulf of Tonkin. Albeit incorporated into
the territory of Lianzhou prefecture by the late Qianlong reign, this island
was largely beyond the reach of Qing political or military control, as Baoning, president of the Board of War, conceded in 1804.45 According to Jiqings
investigation, it was mostly through Bailongwei that the Vietnamese-sposored
pirates sailed to Chinese seas to pillage. For the sake of coordinating action
and clarifying responsibilities, both China and Annam agreed that the hostile
water between Jiangping and Bailongwei marked a recognizable natural barrier or a maritime boundary zone separating the two countries.46
Coastal dwellers on both sides had little identification with this customary political arrangement. In their eyes, along a littoral of mountains and
water, islands and peninsulas, Kwangtung [Guangdong] flowed imperceptibly into Vietnam. It was difficult to ascertain where the Gulf of Tonkin
started and ended because central Vietnam, as Charles Wheeler notes, resembled Chinas southern coast in geography. For centuries, an incessant
circulation of people and goods across the water bridge of JiangpingBailongwei had rendered this demarcation even more porous and ill
guarded. It also turned the South China Sea into an integrative social
space, linked by local patterns of livelihood and affinities, like its inland
counterpart across the Han River highlands.47
The aforementioned contradiction between administrative control and
socioeconomic development suggests that the states top-down construction
of borderland often deviated from the bottom-up perception and utilization
of this space. When this discrepancy was augmented by forceful external
pressures, like the aggressive control of the late Qianlong state, large-scale
protests tended to arise and spread across frontier regions. As the piracy crisis
in the Sino-Vietnamese water world demonstrates, the presence of a transnational political boundary running through the middle of a natural, cohesive
geographical region greatly complicated local governance for both states.
The mismatch between sociogeographic realities and government-defined
borders further increase[d] the peripherality and ambiguity of the borderland as inhabitants [sought] benefits from both sides of the border.48
People learned how to survive and prosper by slipping back and forth
across the patchwork of overlapping, fuzzy jurisdictions. As Murray writes,
So successful were Chinese pirates in playing borderland hide-and-seek
that by 1790 piracy rather than fishing was the mainstay of Chiang-pings
[Jiangpings] economy. Sea raiders from Guangdong, Fujian, and Guangxi
swarmed to this border town to sell booty and buy provisions. Merchants
96
from these provinces also frequented Jiangping to purchase stolen merchandise, reinforcing its status as the hub of a vast network of black
markets. Consequently, pirate booty quickly made its way back into the
south China market and became an important part of the local economy.49
In addition, hard-pressed Chinese outlaws streamed steadily across the
porous border to seek asylum, thus becoming ready recruits for sea raiders. This chaotic situation continued until 1802, when the Tay Son rebels
were finally wiped out by the new Nguyen power.
The second subregion of maritime Guangdong consisted of the three
upper seaward prefectures of Guangzhou, Huizhou, and Chaozhou. Guangzhou prefecture was located on the Pearl River delta, one of the most productive regions of China. The other two lay along the coastline north of
the delta stretching to Fujian. The provincial capital, Canton, sat astride the
confluence of the West, North, and East rivers, dominating the Pearl River
delta and almost the whole Lingnan macroregion. After 1757, Canton became the sole port open to Western shipping, which made the city the very
heart of Chinas richest trading area. As for Chaozhou, it served as the
leading emporium in the Sino-Siamese trade network, according to Jennifer Wayne Cushman.50 These three upper prefectures were also the most
agriculturally rich and densely populated region in the province. Paddyrice cultivation, with double and even triple cropping, was commonly
practiced to take advantage of the fertile alluvial land, optimal weather,
and long growing season. Thanks to ramified water transportation in the
delta that linked the coast with the interior, Canton, Huizhou, and Chaozhou
became the most commercialized part of the Lingnan macroregion. Located at the mouths of inland waterways, bustling ports like Canton and
Macao were heavily involved in trade with Taiwan, Southeast Asia, and
Europe. It was through this enterprising region that the Qings foreign
trade passed. Driven by the soaring demand for Chinese goods, in particular silk and sugar, land use patterns changed greatly in the Pearl River
delta as much of its arable land was given over to commercial crops.51
These three upper seaward prefectures were well known for their unusually powerful lineages, warlike villages, and swarming vagabonds.52 In
1809, local gentry leaders stepped up their self-defense efforts by building
fortresses and organizing militia when desperate sea bandits, pressured by
the draconian embargo enacted by the Liangguang governor-general Bailing, penetrated deeper and deeper into the river plain to procure daily necessities. Few areas in the delta had not prepared local defense works of
some sort by that year. Such widespread local militarization, coordinated
and supported by government officials, directly contributed to the final
dissolution of the piracy confederation in the 1810s.53
97
Fujian
Fujian is covered with a series of undulating mountain chains; the most
important is Mount Wuyi. Their high ridges and sharp slopes give way to
a highly twisted and complex coastline, second only to Guangdong in
terms of length. To safely approach some parts of the rocky seaboard, it
was imperative to enlist the service of local pilots, as the intruding Tay Son
navy did in the closing decades of the eighteenth century. As the largest
waterway in this province, the Min River and its tributaries traverse the
northern half of Fujian before wending eastward into the sea, creating narrow drainage basins facing out to the Taiwan Strait. The downstream
lowland along the east seaside features superior, deepwater ports like
Quanzhou and Xiamen.54 These geographic conditions not only facilitated
Fujians long history of commercial contact with the outside world but
also contributed to a high level of lawlessness and disorder in the area.
Nicknamed mountain country of the southeast, Fujian has the highest
elevation among the coastal provinces. About 85 percent of Fujian is covered with precipitous mountains, which cut it off from inland China, and
only one-tenth of its land is lower than two hundred meters in altitude.
This topography meant that a large part of the province, like Quanzhou
and Zhangzhou prefectures, was unsuitable for paddy-rice agriculture,
making its residents heavily dependent on imports of food grains from
Taiwan and Southeast Asia.55 The topography also explains why the Fujianese people have long oriented toward the sea. By the mid-seventeenth
century, the two aforementioned highly commercialized prefectures had
played a primary part in domestic and foreign maritime trade, linking different parts of China with Southeast Asia. The cities of Quanzhou and
Zhangzhou, along with Xiamen in between, dominated the southern part
of the Fujian coast, while Fuzhou controlled the northern. These four major urban centers together made up the economic heartland of Fujian, thus
becoming the most populous part of the province.
In addition to mountainous topography and sea-oriented economy, Fujian shared many other traits with neighboring Guangdong: dense population, wealthy merchant groups, increasing rural poverty, feuding lineages,
and strong sworn brotherhoods like the Heaven and Earth Society. Yet
Fujian, as a major base for the Ming loyalist movement and the piracy
operation centered on Taiwan, was even tougher than Guangdong to govern in the early Qing.56 Its maritime society suffered the most from the
decades of stringent coastal prohibition described earlier, which artificially
moved the empires southeastern boundary inward and turned its immediate
98
coastal zone into a land of humanmade desolation. This strictly bureaucratic solution to maritime crisis, effective as it was, dealt a devastating
blow to Fujians economy, with consequences that were felt even after the
reopening of foreign trade in 1684.
Fujian thus entered the eighteenth century at a low point in its regional
fortune. Although the abolition of sea bans had brought the province some
fifty years gradual resuscitation, its maritime economy was ultimately
overshadowed by that of neighboring Guangdong with the establishment
of the Canton system in 1757. Thenceforth, Guangdong monopolized the
empires Western trade, which promoted the development of the Lingnan
macroregion and doomed the economy of the southeast coast [macroregion] to nearly a century of stagnation.57 Outside competition compounded by high custom duties and relentless government extortion resulted in the gradual decline of Fujian maritime shipping from the 1780s
onward. To evade the notorious demands of the Xiamen officials, more
and more junks moved their trade bases from Fujian to Canton, the
Leizhou peninsula, and Hainan island. This southward shift contributed
to the sudden rise of Hainanese and Cantonese trade, both licit and illicit,
with Vietnam in the late eighteenth century, which in turn facilitated the
dramatic upsurge of piratical depredations in the South China Sea.58
99
100
zone for the state, it was subject to artificial administrative division and
tenuous sociopolitical control; on the other, as a space of natural topography, it enabled the nonstate and antistate actors to reproduce their autonomy
by carrying out routine frontier-crossing activities or extraordinary social
protest. I shall explore how such bottom-up construction of this maritime
zone differed from the states top-down perception of it and, furthermore,
contradicted official efforts to partition it for the sake of better control.
As an agrarian and continental empire, traditional China had long defined its territory as the Middle Kingdomthe center of All under
Heaven (Tianxia). This Sino-centric view, together with its land-based
notion of sovereignty, pushed the seafaring world to the margins of the
Chinese cognitive frame as though it stood outside and beyond history.
The vast, endless sea, dictated by unfathomable rhythms and swarming
with pestering troublemakers, had invariably been an unpredictable element and untamable space in imperial political thinking. The intrinsic instability, exceptional mobility, and nearly incomprehensible scope of the
South China Sea, as Yan Ruyi suggested, engendered a deep-rooted fear of
it as a mysterious and hostile space. Crossing the ocean space was also
deemed a dangerous venture haunted by vengeful ghosts. A safe journey
through the rough waters, therefore, needed both heavenly blessing and
appropriate appreciation, as the official patronage of the goddess Tianhou
(Empress of Heaven or Mazu) shows.64 Equally compelling was her strong
appeal to sea bandits, who also adopted her as their protective deity.
Thus, to most Chinese, the seas were associated with a terror-filled
world of disorder and unknown possibilities. Like the internal frontier of
the Han River highlands, the seas hindered government communication,
military maneuvering, and economic extraction. After the dramatic inward turn following Zheng Hes seven maritime expeditions, Ming officials tended to view the oceans as they did the Great Wall: both functioned
advantageously as effective barriers to keep foreign barbarians out of the
Chinese empire.65 Through total closure, they reasoned, the maritime borders would be easier to defend than the overland routes into China. This
detachment from the sea gave the Ming regime additional reasons to scale
back its maritime ambition by reducing its navy to merely a coastal defense
force. In general, piratical violence was deemed a sporadic nuisance instead
of the kind of genuine security threat posed by land-based insurrections.
The subsequent Qing rulers largely inherited this long-term negligence
toward the sea, intensified by their seminomadic origins and their preoccupation with the empires inland frontiers in the north and northwest
during the high Qing period. The Manchu court did give some administrative consideration to maritime trading activities, setting up the four cus-
101
toms as mentioned earlier. From the 1720s onward, all interactions with
Western merchants were delegated to their Chinese counterparts in the
form of an authorized monopolistic guild known as the Cohong (Gonghang). This specially licensed group of ocean-trade dealers (yanghang)
needed to keep a close watch on the Westerners, be responsible for their
behaviors on Chinas soil, and guarantee their payment of all duties. This
strict hierarchical model of state supervision and merchant management
culminated in the rise of the Canton system. Partly as a measure of cultural protection, direct contact between Chinese and alien merchants
(yishang) was strictly forbidden, except for the government-designated
go-betweens, the Cohong, who served as useful buffers and middlemen
between them. Thanks to the ingenious Canton-Cohong system, the Qing
authorities largely skirted responsibility for day-to-day relations with the
Western powers and for dealing with the seafaring world.66
The south China water frontier, as Yan Ruyi suggested, represented a
different set of cultural values that undermined the Confucian agenda for
social order.67 Its physical attributes deterred the development of farming
and permanent habitation that were the foundation for Chinas civilizational development. So Ming-Qing states saw the ocean as an inhospitable, unclaimable space, somewhat as they perceived the original forests of
the Han River highlands, as well as the high plateaus and vast deserts in
the northwest.68 The coastal waters, as the boundary between familiar
land and threatening far-off sea, resembled the land in that they were
susceptible to being civilized, controlled, and governed. The deep seas,
however, were deemed both unnecessary and utterly impossible for officials to administer or guard. This hierarchical perception helped shape the
decisively land-centered, defense-oriented, and highly passive Qing coastal
strategy.
Chinese bureaucrats did not conceive of the sea as an undistinguishable
watery whole. Instead, they had a vague understanding of the maritime
space as a separate, divisible water world in its own right, different from
the land in its movements, rhythms, and dynamics. Like their counterparts in Tokugawa Japan, they refined cartographic strategies and made
sense of ocean space not by conquering it but by dividing it into discrete
places and partitioning its threat.69 For a long time the Chinese thought
of the South China Sea as a continuum of two vaguely separated maritime spheres that should be utilized and conceptualized in different ways.
As Murray writes,
offshore, as the open expanse of the South China Sea stretched from the border of Guangdong and Fujian provinces, around Hainan island and the
Leizhou peninsula to the Gulf of Tonkin, the saltwater realm of shallow seas
102
and inshore islands was referred to in Chinese sources as the inner sea (neihai)
or inner ocean (neiyang). Once the shallows deepened, the inshore islands
gave way to offshore islands farther from the land, and the South China Sea
became the southern ocean (Nanyang). This region of deep seas, offshore islands and coral reefs constituted the outer sea (waihai) or outer ocean
(waiyang).70
This twofold construction was long the dominant geographical and political discourse on the South China Sea. It entailed different state power
and administrative responsibilities across the ocean space, exerting a profound impact on the Chinese statecraft tradition. Officials tended to perceive the inner sea as the farthest extent of their maritime authority, a legitimate arena subject to sustainable governance and state possession. The
Qings sovereignty over its immediate coastal waters, for instance, was asserted forcefully in the strong protests against the two British invasions of
Macao in 1802 and 1808.71 As the predictable territorial water deepened
into the faraway outer ocean, however, it became a capricious and asocial
domain increasingly beyond human comprehension, administrative governance, and economic extraction. What is more, the state deemed this endless blue-water region more distance than territory, rendering it outside
any politico-military control.72
Not unlike their counterparts in Tokugawa Japan, Qing mapmakers and
officials surrendered the infathomable high seas to the realm of the
speculation, us[ing] the inventive power of the imagination to fill in the
cognitive blank of ocean space. The early modern Japanese conception, as
Marcia Yonemoto describes it, contributed to the development of profoundly ambivalent representations of ocean space, in which the friendly
and sustaining seas bordering the coastline stood in constant opposition
to the distant and threatening oceans, untamed and unknown.73 The Chinese epistemological division of inner and outer ocean, in a similar vein,
suggests that the deep sea was a mysterious, nonterritorial void outside
land-based society and beyond state possession.
While towering mountain ranges and dense forests divided the Han
River highlands, no clear physiographical boundary demarcated the two
imagined zones of inner and outer ocean. The dissection of a natural and
cohesive realm into two artificial, discrete parts, put differently, was a matter of sociopolitical construction rather than unchanging topography and
ecology. While making little sense to local seafarers, this dissection functioned primarily to set limits on the reach and responsibilities of the state
and to regulate government operations across the fluid, dangerous ocean
space. Emperor Jiaqing pointed out that the officials in coastal provinces
did not dare to venture into the outer sea. They repeatedly wrote off inci-
103
dents in these waters as beyond their jurisdiction and thus of little concern.
Some even ordered that official salt boats avoid routes passing through the
outer ocean, suggesting the government give up policing this hazardous
area altogether.74 While the outer sea represented the place where maritime
governance ceased, it was also the space where pirates sought to maximize
their autonomy and power.
By the mid-fifteenth century, most of the European powers had embraced the concept of maritime prowess as part of their state ideal. Driven
by incessant interstate competition, they viewed overseas expansion as a
necessary route toward achieving politico-economic dominance. By contrast, the Chinese empire generally shied away from asserting its authority
on the ocean: it explicitly made sea defense (haifang) instead of sea
war (haizhan) the cornerstone of its maritime strategy.75 This longestablished policy contributed to Chinas general disinclination, unlike
that of Europe, toward conceptualizing the ocean as a power base, a battleground, or a springboard for oversea aggression.
104
105
and power. Their collaboration with the Tay Son regime, for instance,
helped erode the existing system of political control and facilitate largescale sociopolitical coordination surpassing traditional boundaries.81 Consequently, as the nonstate space of Jiangping-Bailongwei suggests, Chinas enduring problem of maritime governance was greatly compounded
by these new transnational factors. The centuries-old problem, however,
was mostly shaped by the contradictory utilizations, representations,
and regulations of the ocean space by the central state and the littoral
society, epitomizing the ambivalence at the heart of Chinese maritime
spatiality.
106
107
This momentous change in trade pattern had an interconnected relationship with the dramatic surge in piratical violence during the QianlongJiaqing transition. The junk trade between China and Southeast Asia, as
already mentioned, was conducted almost entirely on Chinese or foreign
vessels manned by crewmen from China. This trades considerable decline
in the late eighteenth century put a large number of hired sailors and fishermen, the major source of pirate recruits, out of work. Those who had
engaged in auxiliary water-related occupationsas peddlers, coolie workers, shopkeepers, and boatbuildersalso suffered, in a less direct way.
Many of those displaced, pugnacious people were later hired by professional pirates, who made effective use of their manpower and expertise. In
addition, given the tremendous demographic growth, although commercial opportunities along the south China coast were expanding by 1790,
they were not expanding fast enough to absorb all those who sought or
needed to make their living thereupon.89 Such employment was especially
scarce because a higher percentage of the trade was no longer managed by
Chinese seamen and boats.
Coinciding with this change, Chinas junk trade with its immediate
southern neighbor was also in decline, but mainly for a different reason.
As Murray points out, the legitimate trade between China and Vietnam
was a highly regulated activity conducted entirely by Chinese. The Tay
Son rebellion, which began in the 1770s, and the ensuing border troubles
with the north greatly restricted trade opportunities for both sides. A new
Vietnamese law, in particular, forbade the export of basic commodities,
including rice, that were in great demand in coastal Guangdong and Fujian. In response, the Qing closed down the border markets and rigorously
prohibited export of the copper coins, zinc, and iron that had long been
greatly desired across the southern frontier. This disruption in normal
trade was a shattering blow to the frontier communities and drove their
people into smuggling and piracy.90
As population explosion and shifting trade patterns aggravated rural
poverty and resource constraints, the resulting unemployment and violence placed mounting administrative pressure on local governments and
brought disorder to a new level of intensity both at sea and inland. As
early as 1780 Emperor Qianlong enacted the first ad hoc law to deal especially with the deteriorating situation in Guangdong. Unlike similar statutes in other provinces, this law stipulated the same severe punishment
decapitationfor all bandits who were involved in robbery, including those
acting as lookouts or informants.91 This one-size-fits-all legislation thus
criminalized large numbers of coastal people, especially those in the povertystricken areas, and subjected them to death sentences. As a Guangdong
108
109
III
A View from the Top
Chapter Four
art II explored the local and supralocal logic of the two crises, addressing how their rise and fall fed into broader historical changes
through the high Qing period in general and the Qianlong-Jiaqing transition in particular. Chapters 2 and 3 have examined a variety of issues that
mattered to the political center, but mainly in terms of how they were
manifested in the localized contexts of borderland conditions. Such a bottom-up viewpoint is useful but incomplete because great frontier disturbances were often a symptom of central dysfunction rather than the main
cause of political debilitation. While the dual cataclysms brought to light
problems plaguing the state and society, they also shaped the mutually
conditioning interactions between the two. Thus, in Part III, the major
thrust of this book, I shall turn from the margin to the center by examining the high politics of social protests and state retreat.
The White Lotus and piracy upheavals, to be sure, were two critical
challenges that loomed large in contemporary court politics. These dual
explosive events generated voluminous government records, the single most
important of which was the rich compilation of fanglue (official account
of imperial wars) on the antisectarian military campaign.1 These sources
describe the Qianlong-Jiaqing protests as simple cases of disorderly mobs
defying the state and are reticent about how this wave of disturbances
affected the Qing sociopolitical systems. Historiographical discussions of
the two upheavals, similarly, have paid little heed to the constructive
114
opportunities they offered for state reform or their positive legacy in Qing
history.
Richard L. K. Jung takes a different approach in his study of the Wang
Lun and Lin Shuangwen rebellions. He recuperates the two failed revolts
as agents of political change by reconceptualizing them as a continuously
ongoing struggle for freedom from imperial control by both the officials
and the commoner society at all levels. To further illustrate this contentious process, Jung likens it as emanation of ripples from the point where
a stone tossed into a pool strikes the surface of the water, finally reverberating from the edges back toward the point of impact. As this metaphor
so vividly suggests, central to the Wang Lun and Lin Shuangwen uprisings
were ever-widening circles of impingement by one group on another
that sent shock waves to the highest levels of state machinery. From this
perspective, it is apparent that the significance of popular protests often
goes beyond the severity of their local ravages. Some great upheavals, even
if they fail, can produce reverberating repercussions that stimulate constructive changes across both society and state. In just this sense Thomas
Meadows, a nineteenth-century British intelligence officer in China, argued that rebellion was a chief element of a national stability . . . the
storm that clears and invigorates a political atmosphere.2 To recover the
full history of momentous crises, one should identify the interrelation between bottom-up disturbance and top-down control, which can be both
conflictual and symbiotic.
This study uses the model of all-encompassing contentious crises to examine the anthropology of the state, that is, to deconstruct the states
major components so as to study the different pressures that act on them
as well as the different accommodations they make. In so doing, one can
understand how each segment of the political system pulls in multiple
directions leading to unanticipated patterns of domination and transformation.3 To trace such endogenous dynamics of change, it is crucial to
elucidate how the ingrained tensions develop, play out, and resolve themselves on a multiplicity of levels through the course of the many-sided crises. Part III probes the intertwining imperial, bureaucratic, and foreign responses to the conjunction of the two upheavals, as well as the conflicts
and compromises that occurred as emperors and the officialdom adopted
different visions and strategies for managing the crises.
115
116
117
118
119
tant state affairs, processing memorials and drafting edicts, and supervising the waitings work.16 The emperor could recruit and dismiss them almost at will, disregarding seniority, rank, and educational background as
well as any procedural matters. At the full disposal of their imperial master,
these private servants were expected to take his arbitrary whim as the supreme law and to apply every possible means to facilitate autocratic rule.
As a payoff, they received staunch imperial support while operating beyond
the reach of regular legal restraints and bureaucratic supervision.17
The power of the neiting officials thus lay in their extralegal status as
well as their close, personalized association with the throne. Such unique
privileges created a new inner-court hegemony during the high Qing period, as evinced by the successive establishment and development of neiting
agencies like the Imperial Household Department, the Imperial Southern
Study (Nanshufang), the Deliberative Council of Princes and Ministers
(Yizhengwang Dachen Huiyi), and the Grand Council (Junjichu).18 This
extraordinary inner-court growth sharpened the boundary between the
emperors private agents and public bureaucrats, which made the distinction much clearer than it had been in the Ming.19
It should be emphasized, however, that the distinction between inner
court and outer court was by no means a hard-and-fast division. Neither
was their separation absolute because, for better imperial control, the two
interconnected domains of government power were built so as to transcend their narrow dichotomy. For instance, the neiting and waiting agencies did not have separate budgets in the modern sense. Neither did the
Junjichu establish its own exclusive personnel, despite its status as a key
part of the emperors private bureaucracy. All officials in this inner-court
agency, whether the grand councilors or their secretaries and clerks
(zhangjing), held concurrent positions in various outer-court agencies or
even in the provinces as well.20 With access to all kinds of information inside and outside Beijing, the neiting functioned as the emperors eyes and
ears for the purpose of expanding his dominance over the bureaucracy at
different levels. Consequently, the neiting became the key intermediary
linking the waiting agencies to the throne, helping make imperial rule effective throughout the empire.
To understand the full complexity of the emperor-bureaucracy relationship, one should also look at another structural feature of imperial
Chinese politicsthe dual characteristics of the officialdom. Like the
monarch, who had to balance his routine and arbitrary authority, imperial
bureaucrats were also caught in the centuries-old dilemma of formal and
informal power. To ensure uniformity and coordination of official action
on a national scale, the early Chinese empires had already developed an
120
121
122
relationships embedded in examination politics.26 Qianlongs uneasy feeling was also triggered and reinforced by the simultaneous weakening of
his personal network of Manchu supporters between 1764 and 1779.
Michael G. Chang calls attention to a generational shift that occurred
during this short period of fifteen years as an entire cohort of stalwarts at
Qianlongs court, most of them bannermen and bondservants, passed
away. Two principal examples were the deaths of Fuheng (1770) and Yinjishan (1771), the emperors most trusted Manchu ministers and the leading grand councilors.27 In the following decade or so, the Junjichu was
controlled by powerful Han Chinese cliques that clustered around the new
head councilors Liu Tongxun and Yu Minzhong. Most of their members
came from the larger Northern Scholars Clique, led by Lius students
Weng Fanggang, Zhu Yun, and his younger brother Zhu Gui. Thanks in
large part to academic patronage and regional affinity, these members
emerged into political prominence through the conventional process of the
civil service examination, which was heavily influenced at the time by the
two Chinese councilors (Liu and Yu).28 It is noteworthy that, ironically,
Qianlong himself had promoted the rise of the Northern Scholars Clique,
in an effort to undercut the sway of Zhang Tingyu, his fathers leading
statesman of southern Chinese background.29
Before long, however, Qianlongs worries about the Manchu identity, as
exemplified in his stalled campaign against the soulstealing scare of 1768,
came back to haunt him. The emperor found himself increasingly threatened by the rise of Han officials within the Junjichu, whose shared experience in the standardized examinations gave them not only strong personal
bonds but also a common appreciation for routinized bureaucratic rule.
Such routinization produced individuals with highly specialized knowledge, allowing government agencies to operate according to their own
rational logic and to develop multiple spheres of competence beyond the
emperors personal control. Left unchecked, Qianlong reasoned, these
dangerous proclivities within the highest decision-making agency might
undermine his arbitrary power and moreover endanger the Manchu
ethno-dynastic domination. Put simply, the emperor feared that his loyal
instrument of absolute rule had become a threat to him, with a triumph of
bureaucratic routinization and administrative rationalization ingrained in
examination-based politics.
In a desperate attempt to circumvent this looming menace, Qianlong
engineered the rise of his young imperial bodyguard, the Manchu bannerman Heshen, whose official career was the most spectacular one in Qing
history. From the late 1770s on, the emperor encouraged this new political
superstar to form a Manchu-led hyper-faction and pitted it against the
123
124
as Heshens hegemony created great tensions within the Council and, furthermore, serious political disequilibrium in the officialdom. Tensions developed to such a high pitch that the Junjichu ceased to meet as a body
before Qianlongs halfhearted abdication. The power of the regent reached
its peak in the subsequent three years, since Qianlong was too old to exercise his power properly and the succeeding emperor, Jiaqing, was simply
not allowed to rule. As for effective political counterbalance, it became
virtually nonexistent after the death of the leading councilor Agui, a Liu
Tongxun disciple and a longtime rival of Heshen, in August 1797. Albeit a
Manchu minister, he had been the flag-bearer of the Han Chinese cliques
established by his late teacher and the deceased Yu Minzhong.33
Seen from this perspective, Qianlongs strong empowerment of the neiting destroyed its overall balance with the waiting, provoking an acute institutional crisis in the Qing court. This crisis brought home a profound
dilemma bedeviling late Qianlong politics: the thrones obsession with
short-term, personal goals like power maximization and state centralization often ran counter to long-term, systemic requirements for dynastic
stability and reproduction. This fundamental predicament, as the alarming
crises of the 1790s suggest, developed to such an extent that it pushed the
state-society relationship beyond its sustainable limit. The early-twentiethcentury historian Wang Tongling explains that Qianlongs flamboyant and
despotic rulership through Heshen not only precipitated upheavals but
also destroyed the dynastic rigor accumulated by Qianlongs imperial forefathers (Kangxi and Yongzheng). Wang asserts further that the conservative reforms of Jiaqing and Daoguang (r. 18201850), the so-called weak
monarchs of the Qing, arrested the dynastic degeneration and initiated a
relatively peaceful period of rejuvenation.34 To better illuminate this undervalued process, I shall first discuss Qianlongs abdication.
125
peror himself did not begin to seriously weigh the feasibility and prospect
of abdication until the latter half of his reign. In preparation for this move,
he needed to find and empower a trustworthy agent who could carry out
his will in an effective and responsive way. Heshen, with his knack of
quickly detecting the slightest change in Qianlongs mind, proved able to
serve this purpose most aptly.
When the big day finally came on January 1, 1796, Qianlong took the
highly symbolic step of abdication and became the grand emperor. Having done nothing but govern for three-quarters of his life, however, the
retired monarch could not easily relinquish his power and become a mere
spectator. Nothing expressed this more tellingly than his new imperial seal,
which was inscribed: resigned but still supervising the administration
(guizheng reng xunzheng). Qianlong made abundantly clear on many occasions that he would continue to rule by retaining the two keystones of
imperial power: executive appointment and ultimate decision-making. His
rationale was simple: the succeeding emperor (si huangdi) was still not
ready to shoulder the full responsibility of governing China. It thus was
his responsibility to assume the burden of tutelage and to train Jiaqing in
the craft of emperorship. This was an ingenious arrangement for Qianlong
in many ways. He not only retained great power without breaking his
widely publicized promise but also delegated all the tedious and exhausting routines of imperial duty to the apprentice-ruler, who was allowed to
reign but not to govern. This modified abdication was little more than
political theater staged by Qianlong to ensure himself a glorious and unique
place in history.37
Eighty-six years old at this time, Qianlong was no longer the alert, energetic, and resolute monarch of earlier decades. Still, the retired emperor
could claim that he was blessed with an unabated vitality that enabled him
to take charge of every major state affair. Over the final two decades of his
reign, Qianlong, in actuality, had relied increasingly on Heshen as his regent to govern the empire. Yet this convenient strategy backfired as Heshen abused imperial power for personal ends, not only disrupting the political balance between the inner and outer courts but also alienating the
throne from the officialdom and the populace. Heshen did a superb job of
promoting his master as an unsurpassable sage while shielding him from
the inconvenient truth of a prosperous age gone wrong.38 Consequently,
Qianlongs inflated enthusiasm for empire-building gradually outran realities, which precipitated the cascade of social protests of the late eighteenth
century. Confucian political theory held that a cluster of ominous signs, like
earthquakes, famines, or insurrections, attested to the rulers transgression
of the Mandate of Heaven. As the most formidable crisis in this period, the
126
127
128
than most other Manchu monarchs had been when they ascended the
throne. Decades of imperial training had given him ample time to reflect
on the legacies left by his predecessors as well as the challenges of his own
reign. In this process he had become a political realist with a temperament
quite different from that of his predecessor. The nominal ruler did not share
Qianlongs obssession with personal grandeur and theatrical gestures. Neither was he interested in surpassing his fathers glories and bloated ambitions, which came at a high sociopolitical cost.
Jiaqings pragmatic outlook stemmed from his overriding belief that, as
he often remarked, the key to governance is to suit ruling strategies to the
shifting propensity of the times. He found himself in a new situation
which called for a decided retreat from his fathers unachievable ambition
to firmly control a society that was undergoing unprecedented transformation. The accumulated upheavals of the late eighteenth century indicated
the ultimate failure of such top-down activism, as the late Qianlong state
proved unable to mitigate the mounting tensions in local communities.
Worse still, that state disrupted the working balance with local society due
to its frenetic drive for control, which provoked frontier unrest and strained
the regime beyond its capacity. To reestablish this equilibrium as a way out
of the crises, Jiaqing carried out a series of reforms that signaled his determination to direct the dynasty on a new course away from the radicalism
of late Qianlong politics.
The urgent need for reform did not justify rushing headlong into overambitious programs of sociopolitical transformation, however. Thanks to
the strong influence of his former tutor, Zhu Gui, the new monarch understood the importance of moderation and embraced it as the cardinal principle of governance. Jiaqings middle way was reflected above all in his
painstaking efforts to balance reformism and conservatism, which became
the hallmark of his twenty-five-year emperorship.47 As another example of
his moderate orientation, the emperor identified himself as a ruler of restoration whose overriding political concern was to preserve the dynasty
(shoucheng) rather than expand the imperial enterprise. Despite its sporadic appearance in the Jiaqing reign, the familiar rhetoric of prosperous
age lost its appeal, due to the ongoing crises, and became overshadowed
by the mounting calls for reform. Yet the still powerless monarch had to
wait on the sidelines until his fathers passing in 1799.
Those three years must have been extremely hard for Jiaqing to endure.
His nominal emperorship had begun inauspiciously in the deep shadow of
social crises and court struggle. Anxious to prove himself, the newly enthroned ruler aspired to take command of the rebel-smashing campaigns
that would validate his mandate to rule. The grand emperor, however, let
129
him handle only commonplace matters on the administrative and ceremonial front.48 Stuck in this political limbo, Jiaqing had to struggle unceasingly to hold onto power, since some of his imperial brothers still harbored
the hope of replacing him. But his biggest thorn proved to be Heshen, who
used the fathers unwavering patronage to limit the sons authority. The
untitled regent kept a watchful eye on Jiaqings behavior and frequently
reported it to Qianlong. Heshen recommended his own loyal henchman,
Wu Xinglan, to be Jiaqings literary scribe, with hidden instructions to spy
on Jiaqing. Albeit keenly aware of this machination, Jiaqing graciously
accepted the proposal.49 What galled him even more was that he had to
report all important matters to his father through Heshen, who guarded
access to Qianlong like an impassable screen.50 The royal favorite was
so powerful that he acted as not only the spokesman of the whole bureaucracy but also the personal representative or liaison man of the grand emperor (chuna diming zhi ren). Sometimes he even had the audacity to order Jiaqing around and punish royal princes by citing authorization from
Qianlong.51
Under such circumstances, the new monarch was weak and alone in the
court. One of his most trusted officials was Zhu Gui, as their teacherstudent relationship had grown into a firm, sincere friendship that disregarded their huge difference in age and status.52 It was because of this
special relationship and his upright character that Zhu had been unceremoniously forced out of Beijing in 1789, unable to return until ten years
later. Heshen had seen to it that he was banished to the far-flung southeast coast to deal with the intractable piracy crisis. While in political exile
Zhu exchanged poems and letters with Jiaqing for mutual support and
encouragement. Thanks to Wu Xinglans espionage work, one of these letters was intercepted by Heshen, who in turn used it to thwart Zhus recall
back to the capital.53
Heshens presumptuous actions and uncontested power aroused Jiaqings great envy and long-smoldering resentment. But he adopted a phlegmatic approach and seldom revealed his true emotions. Keeping a low
profile, he set his mind on learning the art of imperial rule and cultivating
his image as a virtuous successor. Meanwhile, he tried to surreptitiously
build up his power base while maneuvering behind the scenes to spy into
Heshens malefactions. He enlisted the support of Ruan Yuan, one of Zhu
Guis disciples, who had distinguished himself in the Hanlin examination
of 1791. Jiaqing encouraged this junior official to cultivate connections
with Heshen and win favors from him. Through such political flirtations
Ruan became Jiaqings trusted informer, who helped provide evidence of
Heshens long list of crimes. In addition, Jiaqing attempted to use the
130
Imperial Southern Study as a power base to support his fledgling authority. Ruan Yuans appointment in 1798 as a duty official in this agency evidently was one example of this effort.54
Notwithstanding the spying and counterspying, Jiaqing opted for discretion in the first three years of his reign and did not defy Heshen openly.
The following court diary aptly captures his mental struggle: The more
the Grand Emperor trusts him [Heshen], the more the emperor abhors
him; the higher rewards and honors the Grand Emperor confers on him,
the more grave crimes the emperor charges him with. Without getting rid
of Heshen, there will be endless disaster. But this dramatic stroke would of
course greatly offend the Grand Emperor.55 Jiaqing worried that any precipitate attack on the royal favorite would arouse his fathers suspicions
and compromise his own claims to power, as had happened to some of his
brothers in past decades. So he took great care to cultivate good relations
with both the supreme abdicated monarch and the dominating regent.
In front of his father, the new sovereign was invariably a filial son and a
submissive student. He refrained from any display of impatience, despite
Qianlongs evident intention to cling to power indefinitely. Immediately
following his fathers abdication announcement, moreover, Jiaqing sent
him request after request asking him not to retire, claiming that he was too
overwhelmed to assume the stupendous responsibility of ruling China.
This kind of political gesture, which extolled filial piety as the basis of
governance, was of vast importance in Chinese court politics. In so doing,
the succeeding emperor won himself a reputation of filial rectitude that
became an important part of his political capital.56
During his three years of apprenticeship Jiaqing was diligent in fulfilling
the ceremonial responsibilities associated with the Son of Heaven. At the
same time, he strove to satisfy Qianlongs every whim by attending to his
needs in endless court activities. According to the eyewitness account of
the Korean envoys, Jiaqings eyes never diverted from his father during the
endless array of court banquets: when the Grand Emperor feels happy, he
is delighted; and when the Grand Emperor smiles, he does likewise (shanghuang xi ze yixi, xiao ze yixiao).57 Such impeccable deference and unconditional submission earned Qianlongs unreserved praise: since his enthronement, the succeeding emperor understands my will and serves me as
a dedicated son. . . . His self-cultivation and filiality is truly extraordinary;
my heart is filled with utmost happiness.58
Jiaqings relationship with Heshen also seemed to have developed satisfactorily. On the surface, Jiaqing held his adversary in great esteem and
treated him with generosity. He deferred to the wishes of the regent on
manifold state affairs, expressing high opinions of his administrative abili-
131
Chapter Five
133
134
secondary status. He excoriated Bi Yuan for his careless mistake and, furthermore, issued a warning edict to all provincial officials to reassert his
supreme authority:
During my abdication ceremony, I issued edicts and informed the world that
I would still take charge of all state affairs. The emperor should subscribe to
my instructions and learn his imperial role. . . . Since last February I have
given orders on every matter regarding the campaign against the Miao rebels.
When it comes to the current campaign [against the White Lotus rebels], I
should also do the same. Even after my retirement, I will deal with all the
memorials, routine or urgent, from both the capital and provincial officials.
How can I indulge myself in the comfort of abdication without fulfilling my
own governing duties?5
135
against the Susishisan Muslim rebellion. Yet he could hardly organize any
effective attacks on the insurgents until the arrival of Agui, one of the most
famed Qing generals. This humiliation seems to have marked the beginning of a major rupture between the two right-hand ministers of Qianlong.8 Agui became the ranking grand councilor sixteen years after joining
the Council in 1763. This veteran minister also received a grand secretary
appointment nearly a decade ahead of Heshen. Aguis longtime service,
remarkable accomplishment, and incorruptibility had won him respect
among court officials. Equally important, he shared Jiaqings great contempt and hatred for Heshen, even though both refrained from direct
conflicts with the imperial favorite.
Mindful of his poor military background, Heshen tried to offset it
through his utmost personal loyalty to Qianlong. Furthermore, he used
this weakness as a convenient excuse for staying in Beijing, where he comfortably could do much better for himself and his imperial master.9 The
White Lotus campaign further strengthened Heshens political position by
enabling him to control more executive power over the outer court: he not
only served as the superintendent of the Boards of Personnel and Punishments but also took charge of the disbursement of military funds in the
Board of Revenue, the states highest office of finance.
With a reputation as Qianlongs troubleshooter, in contrast, Agui was
dispatched throughout the empire to deal with numerous vexing state
matters, ranging from military campaigns and investigation cases to relief
efforts and river works. He thus spent most of his time outside the capital
during the late Qianlong reign, which was quite unusual for such a highly
placed official as the ranking councilor and grand secretary. This deliberate arrangement nonetheless reflected an important function of the
Grand Council: assisting imperial control by supervising all levels of bureaucracy. It was highly plausible that Heshen masterminded this sly maneuver. With his main rival kept out of Beijing, Heshen could easily parlay
his privileged position into even greater power and prestige.
To the aging emperor, Agui and Heshen represented two different types
of ministers he could not do without. Agui was both a great military commander and a hard-driving veteran official who could solve all kinds of
urgent, thorny problems for the state. Due to his upright character and
down-to-earth style, however, Agui sometimes challenged or even opposed
Qianlongs misguided decisions, including his plans to invade Annam and
to establish a system of military yanglian (nourishing-virtue allowances).
Heshen, meanwhile, was an exemplar of obedient imperial servants and
trustworthy inner-court officials. He was a private confidant who not only
understood the emperors mind but also invariably exalted his interests,
136
Heshen Hegemony
Qianlongs half-hearted abdication, instead of curtailing Heshens power,
further prolonged and strengthened it. The escalating White Lotus rebellion provided enormous opportunities for the court favorite to enhance his
137
138
139
force) and the Han Chinese Green Standard army, the latter providing the
vast majority of the fighting force on the ground. Directly led by high military commanders or provincial governors, these regular state soldiers were
deployed in traditional campaigns, focusing on search-and-destroy missions and the defense of fortified cities. But such a top-down strategy
proved ineffective in dealing with the rebels guerrilla warfare. Deeply
rooted in local society, these highly mobile insurgents had little trouble
obtaining resources and manpower from the unfortified villages while eschewing direct confrontations with the government forces. A contemporary ballad satirizes these forces dismal predicament: When the soldiers
leave, the rebels come; when the soldiers approach, the rebels disappear;
alas, when will the two meet each other?22 Partly due to the complicated
terrain and its vast area, the imperial forces were exhausted in endless
pursuit and fruitless blockade during the first stage of the campaign. As a
result, the revolt spilled quickly into five provinces.
Such disturbing news would be a great shock to the complacent grand
emperor. To protect his henchmen and to shirk his own responsibility,
Heshen suppressed unfavorable reports of military defeats and stalemates,
lulling Qianlong into a sense that the campaign was proceeding successfully. With Heshens connivance, many field officials (including Lebao and
Mingliang) followed suit and trimmed their memorials to suit imperial
preference. They became addicted to the habit of sending falsified reports
to Beijing, asking for bountiful rewards on the basis of paper victories.23
Understandably, it is difficult to plumb these officials real states of mind
by reading their ritualistic memorials to the monarch.24 Looking beyond
the familiar rhetoric of obedience and loyalty, however, one can detect indications of veiled bureaucratic resistance and thus assess individuals
ambition in dealing with the ruler. Amid the White Lotus crisis, field officers were generally better able to deflect or even resist imperial will and
central policies than they were in peaceful times. Most of them took care
to withhold information from the throne, giving severe weather, unfavorable terrain, and the rebels cunning as excuses for their delayed reports
and military ineffectuality. When such stratagems did not work, they began blaming one another for bad logistic support and poor battlefield collaboration. All these moves can be understood as carefully camouflaged
bureaucratic oppositions that reveal a deep-seated dilemma of imperial
(principal-agent) control. This predicament became amplified during such
frontier turmoil as the White Lotus rebellion, when greater latitude and
discretionary power were necessary for officials fighting the elusive insurgents. Whereas the thrones dependence on these officers increased greatly
during such times of crisis, his ability to monitor and control them decreased
140
141
142
practice, however, was not widely adopted until the early years of the
White Lotus crisis. These temporary soldiers were mostly single males struggling on the edge of survival. In the eyes of the Qing officials, over half of
them were scum of society who took the soaring turmoil as good fortune
and profited from it. Becoming a xiangyong not only offered them an important source of livelihood but also was preferable to serving as a regular
soldier. As Emperor Jiaqing pointed out: once joining the state army, they
have to obey detailed military rules. While as xiangyong, they are free to
come and go. Moreover, they are often better paid than rank-and-file soldiers. Local braves monthly salary, ranging from 2.4 to 3 taels of silver,
was much higher than that of regular soldiers, which averaged only 1 tael.33
Better remuneration notwithstanding, xiangyong often avoided combat or
delayed victories until receiving the extra incentive of rewards. As Yan
Ruyi observed, many xiangyong were pugnacious social transgressors who
could easily become insurgents themselves. Once discharged, they quickly
switched to the rebel side and became a new source of frontier protest. In
some crisis-torn areas, near the end of the rebellion over half of the remaining insurgents were former mercenaries. Relying on these volatile allies thus became little more than an expensive and dangerous expedient
for the Qing state.34
Due to its contingent and random nature, the employment of xiangyong
also offered ample opportunities for military corruption. Unlike regular
state troops, they were not recorded on a formal military roster. Field officials often camouflaged their misappropriation of war funds by exaggerating the number of local mercenaries they had recruited and then asking
for more money to support them. For instance, Jiaqing questioned Mingliangs alleged military expense of over 140,000 silver taels in three weeks.
Under the heightened pressure, the general admitted that because my
troop was constantly on the move [to pursue the rebels], I did not have
enough time to go through all the procedures to request military supply.
So I sometimes inflated the number of xiangyong for the sake of better
logistic support.35 More often than not, the court had to oblige such requests because it was difficult to keep a close watch over troop allocations
and to ascertain their real needs during large-scale frontier operations.
According to the calculation of Lukang, president of the Board of Revenue,
about half of the total military expense for the White Lotus campaign
was allegedly used to support xiangyong. Hiring these temporary soldiers,
along with military laborers, became a major factor in driving up the war
expenses.36
One example will suffice to explain this. It was calculated that by
1798 Hubei had employed 366,700 xiangyong in total, which required
143
4,700,000 taels of silver and 230,000 shi of rice in logistical support. Emperor Jiaqing voiced his suspicion in an 1807 edict: It is apparent that
there is great inflation here. By 1798, only a handful of ringleaders like Nie
Renjie and Zhang Zhengmo rose up in Hubei. The number of coerced
people was not great either. If as many as 360,000 xiangyong were hired,
considering the additional tens of thousands of regular soldiers stationed in
Hubei and dispatched from other provinces, our imperial army would have
been one hundred times bigger than the rebel force. How come the uprising
continued and spilled over to other provinces? Jiaqing thought that the
exaggeration might have been even worse in Sichuan and Shaanxi, whose
provincial officials claimed to have hired over 370,000 and 260,000
xiangyong, respectively. He even claimed that the embezzlement of war
funds was mostly justified in the name of hiring militiamen. To cut state
payroll, Jiaqing ordained that all relevant provincial governments trim the
number of xiangyong they had reported. In response, local officials found
other convenient excuses to request money, ranging from hiring military laborers to funding relief work and postrebellion reconstruction (shanhou).37
Another means of misappropriating funds was to bestow military
awards (shanghao) on a massive scale, which, as Wei Yuan pointed out,
did not become a big problem until the late Qianlong reign. Field officials
repeatedly asked for inordinate amounts of revenue in the name of rewarding meritorious subordinates like soldiers and personal aides (muyou).
Making these requests, however, did not conform to long-standing state
practices because by statute they could only be granted on a strict basis by
the throne and certain central agencies like the Board of Personnel. The
symbolic honor of these rewards, moreover, always trumped their financial value. While fighting the Lin Shuangwen rebels, for the first time in
Qing history, Fukangan directly gave out handsome military rewards to
his underlings, which greatly increased the burden of war spending. During the White Lotus campaign, to motivate his soldiers on the battlefield,
Delengtai even issued an order that anyone who captured or killed a real
rebel be awarded fifty taels of silver.38
According to Jiaqings estimate, no more than one-tenth of the awardees
deserved the honor of shanghao during the nine-year campaign. Notwithstanding such strong skepticism, the emperor found it difficult to rein in
the expenditure, given the urgent and contingent nature of the suppression
efforts.39 If their shanghao requests were declined, field officers would
claim that these rewards were critical to their suppression efforts and thus
should be bestowed whenever needed. In July 1799, Jiaqing issued an edict
that exemplified his pragmatic approach to this thorny matter: When it
comes to military spending, there are some established rules that should be
144
followed. But this does not mean that we should impose an excessively
stringent control. . . . As long as the rebellion is put down in a speedy manner, I can grant those dubious requests for funds and resources. All in all, it
is better to spend more to wrap up this campaign quickly than to cut costly
outlays and risk dragging it on too long. The emperor later consoled himself in another edict that, after all, most military spending has been dispersed in the society, so there is no need to worry too much about it.40
Well aware of the emperors predicament, field officers profited greatly
from it by exploiting the loopholes in the wartime system of military
spending. Before Qianlongs death, some of them took it as a monthly or
bimonthly routine to request tens of thousands of silver taels. As Grand
Councilor Baoning pointed out, they did not even bother to send a report
to justify their use of the funds. It was thus impossible for the Board of
War to check and supervise the auditing procedures. Consequently, the scale
of the shanghao practice became enormous, as is evidenced by the fact
that a total of 944 xiangyong and local gentry received military awards
in Shaanxi alone. With few restraints on their activities, many officers accumulated great fortunes after several years of campaigning in the Han
River highlands. Often they sent back cash and valued items to their families in Beijing, arousing the envy of metropolitan bureaucrats.41
Military commanders and civil officials also squandered war funds for
entertainment and personal pleasure. This practice had become well established by the end of the second Jinchuan War (17711776). It became even
more prevalent amid the faltering White Lotus campaign. Unscrupulous
officials often held lavish banquets and theatrical performances on the battlefield while neglecting legitimate expenses like military stipend and food
provision. With their pay often in arrears, many soldiers and xiangyong
fought with empty stomachs and inadequate clothing; some even used
cowhide to cover their feet like beggers. Still others supported themselves
by pawning their weapons, tents, and horses. Some unpaid soldiers, especially xiangyong, deserted and swelled the ranks of the insurgents.42
In the hope of prolonging access to wartime resources, officials on the
front lines carried their misconduct to the point of deliberately restraining
suppression efforts. Sometimes they did not fight a single battle or get rid
of a single rebel in months.43 Many officials were dilatory about pressing
attacks and were content to drive the rebels out of their garrisoned territories. Jiaqing called this situation playing with the rebels while profiting
from it (yangbing wankou) and took it as the worst of the misbehaviors
of the military force. As he lamented in an edict, I have heard about the
misconduct of the troops. It is said that most of the captured are old, sick,
or weak, while hardly one of a hundred real rebels are caught. The num-
145
146
pressure, provincial officials were forced to fix their attention on the elusive ringleader while leaving most other rebel forces untouched. They certainly had good reasons to do that. According to the wartime diary of
Gong Wensheng, any officials who could capture major sectarian leaders
like Ran Xuesheng alive would be promoted three ranks and awarded
ten thousand taels of silver.48
The White Lotus rebellion, as Philip Kuhn points out, glaringly exposed
the weakness of the Qing military system during the Qianlong-Jiaqing
transition. On paper, the system had a total of six hundred thousand bannermen and two hundred thousand Green Standard soldiers throughout
the empire, equal to 0.2 percent of the overall population around 1800.
But the actual figure was even smaller than that, due to inflated rosters and
payrolls. Many officials recruited fewer soldiers than the allotted military
rations justified, keeping the unclaimed funds for themselves. In the event
of emergency, they hired xiangyong and other militiamen on a temporary
basis. In addition, as Jiaqing himself conceded, the once formidable Manchu striking forcethe Eight Banner troopshad lost their morale and
discipline. As for the Chinese Green Standard soldiers, they were unevenly
distributed in district and prefectural cities and thus unresponsive to emergencies in local communities. Whereas the insurgents had the advantage of
rapid movement, moreover, the maneuverability of government troops
was greatly compromised in the highlands due to heavy gear and unwieldy
weapons.49
As a result of runaway official corruption, ordinary soldiers often ran
out of war supplies and therefore had to resort to various illegal activities.50 With meager pay and no clear enemies to fight, they even committed indiscriminate atrocities and lootings against the local populace, thus
earning themselves the ironic epithet Red Lotus Society (Honglian
Jiao). In the eyes of some local people, marauding government troops
were even more disruptive than sectarian rebels.51 Under these circumstances, the government troops expended great efforts for small successes
in the first three years of fighting, only finding that the uprising got worse
and worse.
Given the ineffective performance of state troops, some officials in the
rebel-afflicted areas tried working out their own suppression tactics in
adaptation to local situations. A good example is Fang Ji, the magistrate of
Liangshan in Sichuan, who successfully organized local defense by cutting
off the roving insurgents from their source of support.52 Specifically, he
mobilized the communities to build fortified hamlets (zhaibao), concentrating the farming populace in walled villages and removing food supplies
from the countryside. This strategy was later developed into the widely
147
148
In addition to exogenous demands (of an ungovernable social and natural environment) and endogenous challenges (in terms of factional favoritism and bureaucratic conflicts) that incapacitated the political system, the
extraordinary claim-making on the part of provincial officials and military
commanders provides yet another indication of the worsening principalagent problem that hiked the operational costs of the Qianlong-Jiaqing
politics. With decreasing leverage on its own officialdom, the Manchu
regime suffered declining abilities to cope with the accumulated disturbances during this period. Its survival and reproduction thus became overwhelmingly contingent on its capacity to use materialistic incentives and
instrumental rewards to ensure cooperative behavior among the sociopolitical elites at different levels and to gain their compliance with state
goals. Worse yet, Emperor Qianlong used his power and enforced policies
in a way that compromised, rather than promoted, a sustainable relationship between the throne and his bureaucracy. As the throne became more
and more aggressive, established sociopolitical relations and institutions
came under increasing pressure that impinged on the stability of the whole
system.
149
the imperial throne to his son and along with it a troubled empire in great
distress and one unfulfilled goal to achieve. His dying wish was that Jiaqing take the suppression campaign as his first and foremost priority.58
At that juncture, however, Jiaqing had a more urgent problem on his
mind: how was he to deal with Heshen, the overpowerful minister who
was actively profiting from the rebellion? The new emperor must have
sensed a real danger of usurpation as the mounting crises further solidified
Heshens position of de facto regent. Jiaqing was dead set on preventing a
repetition of the Oboi-style regency that had thrown the court into disarray during the 1660s. In his eyes, the threat of a near-usurper at court was
more fearsome, imminent, and personal than that of elusive rebels melting
into the far-flung borderlands. Without removing this archenemy, he could
neither assert his monarchical authority nor give his full attention to the
White Lotus campaign. The new emperors decision and strategies to
eliminate Heshen, at the same time, were largely dictated by the exigencies
of the ongoing suppression campaign. Before the rebellion, Jiaqing might
not have decided to execute Heshen or have had the political clout to do
so. But the escalating crisis gave him more political ground in the secret
struggle for power, as well as a deadly weapon and a golden opportunity
to attack.59
The opportune moment finally came after Qianlongs death. In conjunction with the escalating rebellion, it pushed Jiaqing into the final decision to
eliminate Heshen once and for all. Nevertheless, this was a risky move that
might ruin the emperors reputation as a filial son and jeopardize his newly
obtained power. For thousands of years, the Chinese imperial system rested
on the principle of governing the world with filial piety (yi xiao zhi
tianxia). Early Confucian classics required three years of mourning following the death of a father. The same principle dictated that an emperor
should abstain from making radical political alterations in the first three
years of his rule (sannian wugai), including ousting highly placed officials
inherited from his predecessor.
Jiaqing apparently had given much thought to the problem of how to
deal with the formidable minister as well as what the consequences would
be. He devised a sophisticated six-pronged plan to ensnare his prey and to
carry out a preemptive strike. Immediately following his fathers death,
as the first step of the plan, Jiaqing announced his decision to observe a
three-year period of royal mourning. This decision flatly contradicted both
Qianlongs order and the well-established state ritual (guozhi) that limited
the period of formal mourning to only twenty-seven days. On the following day, a group of princes and high officials submitted a joint petition
applauding Jiaqings filiality while also beseeching him to give up this
150
impractical decision. Given the urgency of crises, they argued, such a prolonged period of formal mourning was unfeasible, as it would interfere
seriously with government administration.60 Jiaqing stood firm, compromising only after a deluge of more requests, especially that from his former
tutor Zhu Gui. The emperor grudgingly agreed to follow tradition, but
he insisted on wearing formal mourning dress for one hundred days and
simple mourning clothes for twenty-seven months.61 All other court procedures and administrative activities remained unaltered.
The atmosphere at the Forbidden City was solemn and uneasy. When
his father passed away, Jiaqing allegedly fainted and fell to the ground. In
the following two weeks, he visited the funeral hall every day, kneeling
down and weeping for several hours. He neglected to eat and lost much
weight.62 Such conspicuous display of filial piety must have had a significant psychological impact on court officials, especially Heshen and his
cronies. To them, the sovereigns unusual posture of deep mourning was a
reassuring sign that he would respect the Confucian precept of making no
drastic changes to his fathers policies for at least three years.
To further reassure the minister, as the second step of his plan, Jiaqing
shrewdly put him in charge of the funeral services immediately on Qianlongs death. Along with his closest associate, Fuchangan, Heshen was
instructed to keep vigil beside the grand emperors coffin day and night.
Both of them, in accordance with the imperial ritual, were not to leave the
main funeral hall during this special period of deep mourning. On January
4, Jiaqing relieved Heshen of his duties as grand councilor and general
commandant of the Capital Gendarmerie.63 This personnel adjustment,
deemed temporary in nature, did not seem to arouse suspicion from Heshen. Since attending the imperial vigil was a great honor and privilege
accorded only to those closest to the late emperor, probably most contemporary officials, including Heshen himself, believed that he would continue to hold great power in the years to come. As a matter of fact, however, Jiaqing had put the minister under virtual house arrest by restraining
his mobility in the name of imperial mourning.
On January 5, as the third step of his plan, Jiaqing promulgated an edict
calling on all qualified officials to send him secret memorials about the
empires most challenging problems.64 It is not clear whether Heshen was
notified of this imperial proclamation. Even so, this would not have troubled him much, because most Qing emperors made such a symbolic call at
the very beginning of their reigns. On the same day, the heat was turned up
a notch further. Probably following Jiaqings cryptic clues, the censors
Wang Niansun and Guangxing fired the first shot at Heshen. Soon afterward, Liang Shangguo and Liu Yong joined the chorus of critics. All these
151
152
153
cultivate their loyalty and to defend his unusual move. He wrote to Guangdong governor Chen Dawen: If I did not act promptly to eliminate Heshen, the country could not be helped. Heaven knows that I have no choice
but to do this.73 In his reply to Lebao, the top commander of the White
Lotus campaign and Sichuan governor-general, Jiaqing scolded: You had
the blessing to be appointed as the commander-in-chief by the grand emperor. But [under the connivance of Heshen] you embezzled military rations and put off the repression efforts. Right now the minister you relied
on has been imprisonedif you continue to procrastinate, how can I spare
you again? Think about it and be very careful.74
By holding Heshen responsible for the botched campaign, Jiaqing excused Lebaos lackluster performance and pardoned other officials in the
field. He declared, I prosecuted Heshen swiftly because your suppression
efforts have been hindered by him. That is why the war [against the White
Lotus] drags on until now. In his instruction to Funing, an official in
charge of campaign logistics, Jiaqing wrote: If you do not atone for your
past blunders and give up your hateful habits, you will end up just like
Heshen. I would rather be accused of replacing my fathers trusted officials
than let the crafty ones continue their evil practices. As for the Jiangxi
governor, Zhang Chengji, the emperor remarked: If Heshen did not receive the full penalty of the law, the whole world would only recognize his
existence, not mine. What other choice do I have? Right or wrong, let the
public opinion be the final judge.75
It is plain that Jiaqing did not violate the injunction of sannian wugai
lightly, as it could have ruined his reputation as a moral monarch according to the Confucian ideal. In a private conversation with his confidant Wu
Xiongguang, a disciple of Agui, Jiaqing asked: Am I punishing Heshen
too quickly? Wu replied: If he had not been put to justice as soon as possible, ignorant people would continue looking on and stirring up trouble.
While our duty entails a prompt strike, ending this quickly without implicating more officials is the utmost embodiment of humanity.76 In relieving the emperors undue burden of guilt, Wu also urged restraint and
opted for a swift yet moderate purge.
As the fifth stroke of his plan, on January 15 Jiaqing finally made
manifest his determination to be rid of Heshen once for all. On the basis
of the severe criticism he had aroused, the monarch formally castigated
his bitter rival with Twenty Indictments, including presumptuous abuse
of power, acquiring ill-gained wealth, and bungling the White Lotus
campaign.77 Only when he heard this lengthy accusation did Heshen fully
comprehend Jiaqings deep hatred for him. Three days later, the distraught
villain was ordered to commit suicide in his prison cell, and all his fabulous
154
wealth was confiscated. This was the sixth and the last stroke of Jiaqings
attack.78
Surviving sources (official and nonofficial) allow us to speak only in
speculative terms about the amount of Heshens fortune and assets. According to the most conservative calculation, it amounted to no less than
30 million taels, about half of the states entire standby treasury surplus
in the late Qianlong reign.79 Much of this newly discovered wealth was
safely relocated to Jiaqings private purse in the Imperial Household Department. Like a windfall, it considerably alleviated financial pressure on
the new government. Its benefit was nicely encapsulated in a simple popular saying: Heshen fell, Jiaqing flourished (Heshen die dao, Jiaqing chi
bao). Of equal importance, by eliminating the most hated public enemy,
Jiaqing made a reputation for himself as a resolute, paramount ruler
(yidai zhi lingzhu) who could strike against anyone daring to challenge
his authority.
The whole Heshen case was resolved in just two weeks. This surprising
rapidity was justified, even necessitated, by the mounting urgency of the
White Lotus campaign. The fire of the uprising cast a brighter light on
Heshens accumulated evils, which helped fuel the outcry against him. One
of the gravest charges in Twenty Indictments was his mishandling of the
supression campaign and his obstruction of military intelligence.80 This
sort of charge had long served as an effective imperial strategy for acting
against overly powerful generals and ministers. A case in point was the
ranking grand councilor Naqin, who, despite being one of the most formidable officials in the early Qianlong reign, was suddenly beheaded in 1749
for his poor leadership as the supreme military commissioner ( jinglue) in
the first Jinchuan campaign.81 Similarly, many highly placed officials in the
provincial and capital bureaucracy were executed for allegedly botching
the war against Burma.
Acutely aware of such historical precedents, Jiaqing used this lethal
weapon to great effect. He issued this edict in the wake of Heshens forced
suicide: Insofar as Heshens crimes are concerned, he delayed unfavorable
military reports and deceived the throne. With his connivance, army commanders and civil officers exaggerated or even concocted victories; they
even had the gall to siphon off military rations. Consequently the campaign drags on even now. This is the most grave crime of Heshen . . . [and]
he should be executed right away.82 Jiaqing recognized that an extraordinary situation called for extraordinary action, even at the cost of his own
political reputation. He displayed a masterly sense of political timing by
neutralizing his archrival during the favorable conjunction of internal
mourning and external rebellion.
155
156
157
back in the direction of late Ming politics, but he glosses over its immediate link with various quasi-literary associations in the Qianlong-Jiaqing
transition.
While hatred for Heshen was increasing in the outer court, similar sentiment was growing in the Grand Council. After the death of Agui, his secretary Wu Xiongguang, his grandson Nayancheng, and Yu Minzhongs
disciple Dai Quheng were pushed out of the Junjichu by Heshen in 1798.
Another two councilors, Dong Gao and Wang Jie, also withdrew from the
agency as early as November 1796. These ousted ministers became Jiaqings most trusted confidants because they had adamantly stayed loyal to
him through the difficult years of Heshen tyranny. Along with the Northern Scholars Clique, led by Zhu Gui, these men became the backbone of
Jiaqings reforms. This alliance was further promoted by the sectarian rebellion that provided a major impulse for their joint action against Heshen.
The dramatic death of Heshen, like a political earthquake, threw the
entire court into a state of anxiety and speculation. With memories of historical precedents still fresh, people had ample reason to believe that a cataclysmic retribution against Heshens supporters was on its way. In June
1669, for instance, the newly empowered Kangxi had imprisoned his chief
regent, Oboi, and had him prosecuted for a long list of crimes. To further
assert his undisputed authority, the fifteen-year-old emperor had also
purged all the six board presidents and major banner officials. Kangxis
record of political persecution was surpassed by his grandson Qianlong,
who had launched a series of political campaigns against an officialdom he
deemed unruly, including the witch-hunting spree that accompanied the
sorcery hysteria in 1768. A more recent example was the Gansu corruption case of 1781, in which more than two hundred bureaucrats had been
punished, fifty-six by execution, for embezzling funds designated for military supplies and famine relief.90 How could Jiaqing miss this golden opportunity to revenge against Heshens cronies for his long humiliation and
frustration?
A Minimalist Purge
To many peoples great surprise, what followed in the next month was a
minimalist purge.91 Jiaqing took pains to eschew a full-scale inquiry
into the misdeeds of Heshen and his notorious cabal. Immediately following Heshens death he proclaimed a policy of moderation and nonimplication (bu yu zhulian), decreeing that further punishment of the malefactors
should be limited:
158
Heshen has abused power and deceived the emperor for a long time. As a result, bottom-up information could not reach the highest level of government.
If the principal culprit is not executed right away, bureaucracy cannot be
disciplined and politics cannot be reformed. . . . Some of you might misunderstand my will and over prosecute, badger me with accusations on Heshens
private and trivial matters, using one or two people and things to substantiate
your charges. If that is the case, the court will be driven into endless mudslinging and vindictive machination. Thus getting rid of a big moth [judu] will
lead to intensified political infighting, which is the last thing I want. The cardinal reason why I severely punished Heshen was that he mishandled such
urgent state affairs as the ongoing military campaign. By comparison, his
corruption and embezzlement of public funds were minor crimes. That is also
the reason why I dealt with this case in such a swift way. I want you to take
this as a precaution for the future, never intending to implicate more people
and punish them for their past problems.92
This edict is particularly useful for what it reveals about the hidden link
between inner state-building and the White Lotus campaign. Here Jiaqing
changed the debate about Heshens case, shifting it from an issue of simple
bureaucratic corruption to one of political crime that endangered state
survival and necessitated prompt reforms. He hoped that through a policy
of general amnesty Heshens followers could be reeducated and their loyalty would return to where it belonged. The newly empowered emperor
urged those officials to serve him single-mindedly and to support his comprehensive efforts of restoration (xian yu weixin). In so doing, he reached
a tacit compromise with those who had been connected to the erstwhile regent in one way or another. Ultimately, only Heshen lost his life in this minimalist purge. While several of his closest associates, including Fuchangan,
Wu Xinglan, Yijianga, and Zhengrui met with severe punishment, none of
them were executed. The majority of their less important cronies were left
in place.93
Most scholarly investigations into the Jiaqing reign have tended to focus
on the limitations of this controlled purge, taking the emperors inability
to institute thorough reforms as his original sin that eventually spelled
doom for the Qing Empire.94 This negative picture nonetheless deviates
substantially from how Jiaqing was depicted by contemporary observers
like the Manchu Prince Zhaolian. In his eyes, as R. Kent Guy notes, the
emperors minimalist purge represented nothing less than a restoration
(wei-xin) of Qing government. This moderate move, I would add, was not
simply an expedient concession to the harsh realities of court politics but
also was part of a systematic effort to promote the process of dynastic renewal. Jiaqing realized that to save the Great Qing, he needed to recreate
a viable emperor-bureaucracy relationship by steering a conciliatory course
159
160
reforms for long after the dust of Heshens case settled. In response, like
their Ming predecessors, some of them took up the Confucian responsibility of political remonstrance and argued vociferously for a drastic reshaping of the Qing institutions to cope with harsh realities.98
The most spectacular episode was the martyr-like remonstrance of
Hong Liangji, a Changzhou scholar who achieved national prominence in
the 1780s.99 Thanks to the patronage network fostered under Zhu Gui
and Weng Fanggang, this political aspirant advanced through the civil service system and became a jinshi at the age of forty-four in 1790. In Beijing,
Hongs reputation for uncompromising morality and high principle made
him a major leader of the anti-Heshen movement associated with the literati associations established by Fashishan and Hu Jitang. He later served
as commissioner of education in Guizhou, a position that enabled him to
personally observe the accumulated sociopolitical ills in local government
and society. Hong thus applied himself to a range of statecraft studies
( jingshi) and formulated his critical views on contemporary conditions in
a collection of private essays written in 1793 and titled Opinions (Yi
Yan).100 His pessimistic but shrewd observations of how population growth
influenced productive capacity, for example, earned him a posthumous
reputation as the Chinese Malthus. Observing the social discontent and
state crisis caused by demographic explosion, Hong challenged a fundamental assumption in Chinese political thinking that continuous population
boom was a sure sign of good government and a well-ordered society.101 To
his mind, such demographic prosperity was hardly sustainable because it
entailed a thinner margin of survival in an overpopulated society, which
was a recipe for natural and humanmade disasters.
In March 1798, Hong Liangji attended a Grand Examination for Hanlin members (Hanyuan Dakao) at the Forbidden City, the topic of which
was The Pacification of Heretical Sects (Zheng Xiejiao Shu). He submitted a provocative and emotionally charged treatise, emphasizing that the
real origin of the White Lotus rebellion lay in the extremely oppressive
practices of local authorities. Under such circumstances, most sectarians
had no choice but to defend themselves, which promoted their militarization and spurred the uprising. Hongs solution was rather simple and idealistic: a massive amnesty for rank-and-file rebels, followed by a large-scale
rehabilitation program to reincorporate them into society. To achieve these
goals, a moral and just government had to be restored after a thorough
housecleaning of venal officials at various levels.102
With his excellent exposition of the topic, Hong earned second place in
the Grand Examination. His article was so lofty and inspiring that it became a popular read among literati scholars at that time.103 As one might
161
162
and Prince Cheng (Yongxing), asking these three court dignitaries to submit the letter for him. Having started their careers as Hanlin academicians
themselves, both Zhu and Liu well understood that such an impulsive remonstrance might cost Hong his life. Partly to protect their talented disciple, the two ministers chose not to pass the letter on to the emperor. But
Prince Cheng did it without hesitation.106
Jiaqing was horrified by Hongs candid yet strident critique, which went
beyond criticizing Heshens hegemony to attacking the political system as
he saw it. In the eyes of the enraged emperor, this not only went against his
policy of nonimplication but also sent a dangerous signal that the factional specter of Donglin politics had begun to reemerge. He warned:
How can we repeat the folly and disaster of late Ming?107 If all those
Hong accused were to be investigated, the divisive forces that had ruined
the previous dynasty would be resurrected along with their witch-hunting
spirit of vindictiveness. Conducting a massive political cleansing, in addition, would stymie the repression campaign and undermine the emperors
fragile power base.
In order to save himself the agony of receiving more remonstrating memorials, Jiaqing immediately removed Hong Liangji from his post and
threw him into prison. Nevertheless, the emperor refused to have the reckless Hanlin executed, as some conservative officials suggested, settling instead on exiling him to far-off Ili in the northwest. Jiaqing was admittedly
so impressed by Hongs blunt criticism that he put the remonstrance letter
next to his bed and often read it as a warning to himself. In April 1800, he
recalled the remonstrator back to Beijing and restored his reputation.108
Despite this remedial measure, his handling of Hongs case to some degree
deterred the free flow of suggestions from scholar-officials.
Whereas Hongs banishment silenced the debate within the Hanlin circle, heated discussion had just begun among the literati across the empire.
Many leading scholars, including Zhang Xuecheng, Wang Chang, Cui Shu,
Duan Yucai, Yun Jing, and Yao Nai, circulated politically charged works
among friends or composed letters to high officials. Like Hong, Zhang
singled out Heshens corruption and power abuse as a key precipitating factor contributing to local maladministration and rising protest. He warned:
if local misgovernment is not ended, sectarians will inevitably rise up and
make trouble again.109
Heshens dramatic rise and fall, to some degree, altered the subsequent
course of Qing history.110 On the one hand his hegemony and malefactions were the focus for covert literati alignments in the closing decades of
the eighteenth century; on the other, as Benjamin Elman writes, his tragic
end became the cornerstone for reformulation of literati prerogatives vis-
163
-vis the state and its imperial institutions. Like the late Ming eunuch
usurpation of Wei Zhongxian, the Heshen tyranny was a watershed for
imperial politics: as the classical legitimization for autocratic government
weakened, the politics of literary expression tilted decisively in favor of
literati dissent. Hongs political and moral protest represented the beginning of a revival of disinterested discussion, which ignited a spate of
bottom-up critiques of the late Qing exercise of political power. At the
same time, self-conscious literati factions and friendship networks took on
new shapes in the face of the contemporary disturbances.111
The White Lotus and piracy upheavals facilitated this decided change in
Qing political culture. Lettered elites like Hong Liangji and Zhang Xuecheng, fully comprehending the political significance of both crises, sought a
more autonomous, legitimate role in saving and ordering the world. Consequently, Donglin-style literati networks, moral righteousness, and political activism that had been submerged for a century and a half, reappeared
as a beacon of hope rather than as a sign of selfish factionalism during
the Jiaqing period.112 This deep historical continuity stemmed in large part
from chains of internal events rather than from the external impact that
many traditional studies have stressed.
Hongs radical remonstrance thus represented the opening salvo in the
revival of literati activism in the nineteenth century politics of China.113
Hong showed less concern about the immediate social crises than about
the deeper institutional problems of government decision-making. His diagnosis of the Qings pressing ills was rhetorically persuasive but hardly
pragmatic. In general, he was silent on the specific procedures and concrete programs of his reform proposals. Very much a political visionary,
Elman contends, Hong was in some ways addressing the institutional
problems of the late Qing. He displayed a consistent interest in shifting
power outward and downward within the government structure to allow
a wiser exercise of political initiative. On this point, Hong had much in
common with his intellectual predecessors Gu Yanwu and Huang Zongxi
as well as his contemporaries Bao Shichen and Zhang Huiyan. In his implicit critique of the throne and passionate appeal for radical reforms,
Hong was already talking about familiar questions of political participation, competition and control in the context of conditions inherited from
the eighteenth century and earlier. These questions remained the most
discussed problems of the late Qing literati-officials, including Wei Yuan
and Feng Guifen.114
Like Elman, who accentuates the deep continuities in late imperial history, Kuhn highlights enduring internal challenges as the real origins of
the modern Chinese state. He asserts that people like Hong were partly
164
Chapter Six
166
that would give him more waiting support as well as stronger leverage in
dealing with his private bureaucrats. This approach, paradoxically, would
also restrain his own arbitrary will and weaken his exercise of absolute
rule.
Jiaqings remedy to the aforementioned problem was to strive for
increasing but controlled bureaucratization of the inner court. More specifically, he tightened control over the neiting by making it more institutionalized and formalized, while allowing it to retain some of its former
privileges and responsibilities. This strategy was rooted in the simple belief
that during a time of extreme instability, protecting dynastic security came
before any personal tinkering with monarchical power. In seeking a novel
way of controlling the Grand Council and the Imperial Household Department, Jiaqing thus proffered his own solution to the enduring quandary besetting him and his predecessors: how to balance the private, personal interests of the monarch and the public, systemic interests of the
state, referring mostly to its long-term, sustainable reproduction.3
When Jiaqing ascended the throne, he had the bad luck to confront the
tension between imperial and state interests in an especially acute form.
The sagacious monarch realized that, as the empire entered its phase of
political debt, his major task was to cautiously sustain the grand enterprise (shenshou piji) instead of unrealistically expanding it.4 Toward this
end, he should not only withdraw from his fathers aggressive empirebuilding efforts but also overcome any self-indulgent desire to shore up
imperial power vis--vis the officialdom. Instead of promoting a thorough
purge and sweeping political reforms, Jiaqing committed himself to a process of dynastic recuperation by recreating the balance between the inner
and outer courts.
167
The beginnings of the Junjichu date back to the years around 1729,
when Emperor Yongzheng established the ad hoc Office of Military Command (Junxufang) to deliberate on urgent war policies during the campaign against the Zunghar Mongols. Originally attached to the Grand Secretariat (Neige), this provisional organ continued to exist after the Zunghar
war and developed further into a powerful, independent inner-court agency,
greatly reinforcing mid-Qing autocracy. With the new title Grand Council, it gradually replaced the Neige and the Imperial Southern Study (Nanshufang) as the highest decision-making organ in government.6 Bartlett notes
that the Junjichu was an informal, flexible inner-court agency untouched
by administrative law and protected by the veil of imperial secrecy. Thanks
to its extralegal dynamic, the Grand Council underwent phenomenal
institutional growth throughout the Qianlong reign, with its supervisory
responsibilities multiplied from an original focus on military matters to
embrace the whole range of administrative tasks.7
This picture changed quickly and drastically as Jiaqing put in place a
series of streamlining measures to curb the Junjichus dangerous power
expansion. Abandoning his fathers strategy of divide and control,
Yoon argues, Jiaqing attempted instead to check this agency by turning it
into a formal official institution subject to manifold statutory regulations.8 As an unmistakable sign of this bureaucratization, the Grand
Council was better defined in written rules and became more visible in
regular administrative activities. For the first time, for instance, it was
included in the recompiled Huidian (collected statutes) completed in
1818.9 An independent section of twelve pages ( juan) was devoted to the
Grand Council, even though there was no corresponding content in the
precedent section (shili). Bartlett holds that what was published stuck
to general procedures and revealed few details of the most significant
Grand Council operations.10 In my view, however, this sort of limited
publicity was significant in promoting a more balanced relationship between the emperor and his major government agencies. It exemplifies Jiaqings efforts to promote a semiinstitutionalized neiting while retaining
some of its extralegal power to undergird his own personal authority.
This controlled routinization for the first time recognized the Junjichus
legal status and certified its identity as a formal government organ. It
also put this organ within a generally stable framework of administrative codes, marking a sharp departure from the flexibility and secrecy
this body had enjoyed in the past.
Since traditional Chinese politics was based on the rule of men, the chief
guarantee of good government lay in proper personnel selection. After removing Heshen and his close associate Fuchangan, Emperor Jiaqing left
168
169
170
councilors like Heshen.22 This decision ensured that all councilors exerted
their power at the presidential level instead of the superintendent one,
which meant less imperial intervention and more cross-board deliberation.
Although it helped promote a political balance within the officialdom, this
measure indirectly mitigated the emperors arbitrary authority by curbing
the power of his most trusted personal advisors.23
Jiaqing took other resolute steps to check the centralization of power in
high government agencies. He urged ministers from the Junjichu and other
organs to consult closely with one another on major state affairs in order
to minimize self-assumption and dogmatism. For better collaboration and
surveillance, the emperor strove to maintain an overall balance by having
one president from each board represented in the Junjichu.24 Although this
political ideal was difficult to realize, given the diminishing number of
councilors, it clearly shows that Jiaqing valued collective wisdom based on
functional specification and interagency collaboration. At the same time,
the emperor stipulated that councilors need not necessarily reach consensus before submitting their deliberative opinions to him, a measure that
allowed for, or even welcomed, different opinions in the highest decisionmaking process. Councilors now had to work in their respective waiting
agencies when not summoned by the emperor, thus making it more difficult for them to interfere in other boards affairs.25 All these maneuvers
show that Jiaqing went to great lengths to avert the trauma caused by
Heshens hegemony: he put the councilors under close control, kept them
mostly separated, and rendered them susceptible to routine bureaucratic
disciplines. As a result, the boundary between the Grand Council and the
waiting agencies became increasingly blurred.
Meanwhile, the emperor curbed the Junjichus authority by decentralizing its decision-making power. He convened joint sessions composed of a
large number of senior officials from different agencies from whom he
sought advice. An imperial edict dated December 6, 1805, reads in part:
When it comes to important state affairs, I always consult with the grand
councilors and the nine ministers [jiuqing]. I dont think several Councilors as well as the president and vice-presidents of a single board can reach
an informed decision. For that reason, I turn to a larger group in order to
benefit from collective wisdom. . . . If everything is entrusted to the councilors, I will be faulted for relying too much on them and for behaving
like an autocrat [zhuanshan].26 Here Jiaqing is referring to the alarm
generated by Hong Liangjis remonstrance in 1799. As the emperor saw
it, the crux of the problem was the overwhelming inner-court influence
that underpinned excessive monarchical authority. In an effort to address this problem, he tightened his control over the institutionalized
171
Grand Council, which could only be achieved at a cost to his own autocratic power.27
After his enthronement in 1796, the emperor used the Imperial Southern
Study (Nanshufang) to check Heshens hegemony. Immediately following
his fathers death, Jiaqing sent for his closest confidant, Zhu Gui, and then
the Anhui governor, to come to Beijing to take charge of the Nanshufang.
This arrangement continued until Zhus death in 1806. Besides serving as
grand secretary, Zhu also headed the Boards of Revenue, Personnel, and
Works, though, interestingly, he was never appointed to a position in the
Grand Council.28
Some officials aspired to empower the waiting agencies rather than the
Nanshufang in the highest decision-making process. In his memorial dated
October 13, 1813, the censor Cai Jiong bemoaned the decline of the
Grand Secretariat, as fewer and fewer of its officials became grand councilors after the Yongzheng reign. He proposed that after every policy deliberation with the councilors, Jiaqing should get a second opinion by conversing with one of the grand secretaries for at least thirty minutes.29 It is
unclear whether or not Cais suggestion was taken. By broadening political consultation, however, the emperor and his officials apparently were
endeavoring to prevent the Junjichus domination of court politics.
Another noteworthy aspect of Jiaqings reforms was his treatment of
the Grand Council secretaries and clerks (zhangjing or siyuan). Known
colloquially as little grand councilors (xiao junji), these officials formed
the central part of the Junjichu, attending to its major duties and keeping
it running. Similar to the councilors, who handpicked them for the jobs,
zhangjing were left largely unregulated, and their number was not fixed.
Throughout the Qianlong period, the originally clerk-like little grand
councilors gradually had become influential officials, some dispatched
to provinces on confidential imperial missions. As R. Kent Guy points
out, twenty-nine Junjichu secretaries served as governors in Qianlongs
reign15 percent of those who attained this high provincial post. Furthermore, the number of zhangjing receiving this outer-court job increased in
the period from the 1750s to 1796, exemplifying Qianlongs centralizing
efforts. Some of the most capable, like Dai Quheng, later even became
grand councilors.30
As soon as he assumed personal control of the throne, Jiaqing laid down
detailed specifications to dictate the number, ethnic composition, and behavior of the zhangjing. On January 16, 1799, he decreed that their number was to be fixed, at sixteen Manchus and sixteen Han Chinese, and they
should be organized into four ethnically compartmentalized duty groups
who would serve on a rotational basis.31 Members could come from the
172
Grand Secretariat or from outer-court agencies like the Six Boards and the
Ministry of Outer Dependencies (Lifan Yuan).32 While Junjichu clerks traditionally had been expected to be appointed on the basis of merit recommendations from their original offices, beginning in 1806 they also had to
pass special written examinations presided over by the Grand Council.
Most of these examination-takers needed the prior qualification of jinshi
or juren (literally the recommended men, the degree holder who passed
the provincial-level civil service examination) degrees. Within this framework, the councilors selected and proposed the final candidates to the
emperor, waiting for his approval and imperial audience. To ensure the
credibility of recommendations, Jiaqing held the councilors responsible
for any future malefaction or incompetence on the part of their chosen
secretaries.33
Besides formalizing the selection process, Jiaqing also took other measures to curtail the power of zhangjing. An edict of March 1799 stipulated
that they should not serve simultaneously as censors. Neither could they
take concurrent positions, like vice commissioner of the Bureau of Transmission (Tongzhengsi Fushi) or junior official of the Court of Judicial Review (Dalishi Shaoqing).34 To ensure the Grand Councils impartiality and
independence, Jiaqing followed the suggestion of the censor Wu Bangqing
and expressly barred sons of top capital and provincial officials from serving as zhangjing.35 In 1801, he also forbade zhangjing to go on missions
outside Beijing as secretarial assistants to bureaucrats other than members
of the Grand Council.36
In addition, Jiaqing strengthened his control over the flow of information. He lamented that the Junjichu had abused the system of imperial
communication under Heshens watch. On January 8, five days after coming to full power, the emperor decreed that all secret memorials should
reach him directly with no private separate messages (fufeng) attached
for the Grand Council or any other agencies. Whenever necessary, he
would summon relevant officials for consultation. Without imperial consent, the councilors were not to meddle in the deliberation process or to
give orders.37 Jiaqing put it more explicitly in another edict: Now all military reports from the battlefield reach me uninterrupted. Other than drafting edicts according to my instructions, the Junjichu should not interfere
with the decision-making process. All the rewards and punishments come
from my deliberation. . . . The councilors have no power to reward or promote officials for their contribution, neither can they redeem or protect
those who commit a crime.38 With Heshen still strongly in mind, the emperor was sending a clear message that all power should flow from his
throne alone.
173
Some officials thought that Jiaqings changes went too far. In a memorial dated February 24, 1802, for example, the censor Wang Ningfu urged
restoration of the agencys power and prestige. Jiaqing resolutely refused
this request in the following edict: For the sake of efficiency and consistency, councilors are responsible for drafting the edicts. But this does not
mean that I entrust crucial state power to the group of several councilors.
All metropolitan and field officials are appointed by me. If the councilors
were to obtain such authority, they would become too powerful.39 Other
bureaucrats urged Jiaqing to go farther in limiting the role of the Grand
Council in court politics. The censor He Yuanlang submitted a memorial
suggesting that the Chinese name Junjichu be changed in order to commemorate the end of the White Lotus campaign. He explained that the
agency, unlike the Board of War (Bingbu), had a variety of responsibilities
and thus ought not to have a name that conveyed a strong militaristic connotation. Jiaqing brushed aside this suggestion, reiterating that what he
envisioned was a controlled and pragmatic reform, not a radical and idealistic one.40
Another whistleblower for a major institutional revamp, the censor Yin
Zhuangtu, offered more specific suggestions to cut the Junjichus power. In
a memorial of 1803, he recommended that the emperor set up another
high consulting body by handpicking twenty trusted officials from various
waiting agencies, including the Hanlin Academy, the Six Boards, and the
Censorate, as well as the provincial and prefectural governments. This
composite group of special advisors would serve in the neiting on a rotational basis, working to enhance imperial power and to aid bureaucratic
control. Their main responsibilities would include reading incoming memorials and proofreading outgoing edicts on behalf of the emperor as well
as providing advices on important state affairs, which largely overlapped
with those of the Junjichu. Yins proposal, if adopted, would have diverted
a substantial portion of the Grand Councils decision-making power to a
new inner-court agency. In Jiaqings eyes, this seemed no different from
setting up another Junjichu (an inner Grand Council, nei junji) alongside
the original one. Such unnecessary institutional reform would not only go
against established tradition but also create chaos in the court hierarchy by
inviting partisan struggles reminiscent of the late Ming debacle. He thus
flatly rejected this proposal, reasserting his conviction that the basic remedy
for the acute political problems was not to counterbalance the Junjichu
alone but to control the overwhelming neiting influence as a whole.41
The downgrading and bureaucratization of the Grand Council reflected
more than political expediency to appease long-frustrated waiting officials. Paradoxically, it was such circumscribing measures that shielded the
174
agency from further waiting opposition in the Jiaqing reign and helped it
weather even bigger political storms during the constitutional reforms of
the late Qing. The regulations endow[ed] the council with a new mantle
of legitimacy and reconfirmed its status as the most powerful neiting organ, which it retained until the end of the dynasty.42 On a broader level,
Jiaqings reforms not only recreated a more workable balance between
major government agencies but also contributed to more constructive relations between the emperor and his officials. A similar process played
out in Jiaqings reform of another crucial inner-court agency, the Imperial
Household Department.
175
from the regular taxes paid into the Hubu by local governments at different levels. Dubbed the Inner Board of Revenue (Nei Hubu), the Guangchusi often commanded more resources than its outer-court counterpart.
In fact, the emperor could draw on both his personal treasury, managed by
the Neiwufu, and the public treasury, operated by the Hubu.44 Qianlong,
of all the Qing emperors, had been the most persistent in transferring
funds between the two sources. Such a blending of personal and state finances gave a monarch great flexibility in using available resources to
pursue his ambitious goals.
While there is no consensus on the exact date of its establishment, most
scholars concur that the Neiwufus basic structure came into being before
the Manchu conquest of China in 1644. The origins of this semiprivate
institution, patterned after the bondservants (baoyi) of another trademark
Manchu systemthe bannerscan be traced back to Nurhacis personal
household administration.45 The Neiwufu took its definitive form during
the early Kangxi reign after an integration with the short-lived Thirteen
Eunuch Bureaus (Shisan Yamen, 16541661). The resulting subordination
of the eunuchs to the imperial bondservants created a two-tiered neiting
agency that incorporated both Manchu and Chinese traditions. Thanks to
this unique organization, the Qing proved most successful in preventing
the serious eunuch interference in court politics that had led to the Ming
collapse.46 Thereafter, the Neiwufu grew rapidly, reaching its heyday during the Qianlong reign. As new subagencies were created, the total number
of Neiwufu officials increased roughly threefold between 1662 and 1796.47
Such rapid institutional growth, combined with the simultaneous Junjichu
expansion, testifies to the dramatic rise of the neiting during the high Qing
period.
The Neiwufu, moreover, was one of the most exclusive and self-contained
agencies in the Qing bureaucracy. Deliberately made to overlap with other
government organs, the Grand Council was filled by members from both
the inner and outer courts. The Neiwufu, by contrast, had a long tradition
of selecting and promoting all personnel from within its closed system in
accord with its own procedures, under the supervision of the Neiwufu directors, whose numbers varied. It was staffed almost entirely by the bondservants of the Upper / Inner Three Banners (Nei Sanqi / Shang Sanqi), who
were essentially the household servants of the emperor. Before Jiaqings
reform, Neiwufu officials were rarely hampered by such routine regulations
as the Rule of Avoidance applicable to the outer-court agencies.48 This
prerogative gave the Neiwufu directors tremendous power while promoting more efficient implementation of the imperial will. The great extent of
such institutional and personal privileges, however, also spawned serious
176
177
178
check of probationary ethic, as an integral part of Chinese political culture, was no longer effective in regulating bureaucratic behavior and sustaining political cooperation. Consequently, yizuiyin payments directly or
indirectly raised costs for local governance that could only be covered by
increased exploitation and heightened corruption. It was partly this impasse of the principal-agent problem that spawned the dramatic combination of crises during the Qianlong-Jiaqing transition.
The dire situation prompted Jiaqing to introduce reforms that created
moderate yet significant changes within the Imperial Household Department. Soon after Heshens demise, the new emperor ordered the Neiwufu
to confiscate his staggering fortune and to discontinue the yizuiyin system.
Without fanfare, he also abolished the Secret Accounts Bureau. On May 2,
Jiaqing even stopped the traditional practice of using the yanglianyin
(nourishing-virtue allowance) as a fine or as nonroutine compensation for
local administration.57 In addition, he took measures to restrain the Neiwufus outsized expansion and to distant it from the Grand Council. Under Qianlong, Neiwufu ministers represented on the Junjichu usually held
the high post of grand ministers in attendance, a practice that was apparently halted in the Jiaqing reign. Prior to the reforms, the Neiwufu directors selected officials from the Manchu bondservants to head the various
subagencies and ministries of this self-contained agency, many of whom
also held concurrent posts in the Six Boards or other organs with no consideration of the Rule of Avoidance.58
From 1799 onward, however, the Neiwufu faced moderate yet increasing restraint in its personnel practices. Critics hoped to end its neiting
autonomy and to blur its boundary with the waiting equivalent. For instance, the vice president of the Board of Punishments (Xingbu), Guangxing, claimed that it was both necessary and possible for Neiwufu officials
to abide by the Rule of Avoidance. He further suggested that Neiwufu
personnel who violated this regulation should switch positions with the
designated outer-court bureaucrats of the same rank (duiping diaobu).
These suggestions, on Jiaqings order, were quickly forwarded to the Board
of Personnel (libu) for collective deliberation. In his report to the emperor,
Qinggui commended Guangxing for his efforts to put some restraints on
the Neiwufu and urged its directors to enforce the Rule of Avoidance to
the fullest extent possible within the agency. Nevertheless, he opposed
Guangxings suggestion that problematic Department officials be exchanged with their outer-court equivalents, which would send the wrong
message that regular capital bureaucrats could serve in the Department
and manage secret imperial affairs. From Qingguis vantage point, such an
exchange not only contradicted the dynastic tradition of employing only
179
neiting officials in the Neiwufu, it also was unfeasible because there had
been no libu record to keep track of the Departments personnel selection.
As another sign of his moderate reformism, Jiaqing followed Qingguis
suggestion and subjected the Neiwufu to the Rule of Avoidance originally
directed at the outer court.59 Meanwhile, he found it necessary to retain
some of the agencys exclusive privileges for the purpose of distinguishing
imperial family matters from state affairs. Alert to its acute problems during the Heshen hegemony, however, Jiaqing did want to impose some sort
of personal will and institutional check on the Neiwufu, especially regarding the selection of its top officials. Sensing Jiaqings wish, the censor
Jueluoenzhi submitted a memorial suggesting that the Department directors give up some of their personnel selection powers: Henceforth candidates for high-ranking Neiwufu posts, like prospective officials for the
three treasuries at the Board of Revenue (hubu sanku), should be recommended by the directors and handpicked by the emperor. And their terms
should be limited to three years.60
Apart from asserting more control over important Neiwufu appointments, Jiaqing also tried to limit its officials ability to achieve upward
mobility through making financial contributions. Sitting for the civil service examinations had been the regular and the most prestigious route to
officialdom since the Song dynasty. Those who failed in the examinations
still could climb the sociopolitical ladder through such irregular paths as
purchasing official titles and hereditary privileges. This secondary channel
had long been a necessary systemic adaptation to increasing demands for
upward social mobility, especially during times of acute crisis. In another
form of irregular political participation, suspended, demoted, and dismissed capital officials were able to have their official ranks or positions
restored by making financial contributions to the government ( juanfu). This
practice of reinstatement became so popular during the late Qianlong
reign that it was certified by the libu and regulated by a set of procedural
requirements. If the applicants passed the preliminary screening, they
underwent a three-year probation period when they were sent to work in
certain agencies to improve their administrative capabilities and skills.
On completion of the probationary term, each applicant was evaluated
by his agency leader. If the assessment was positive and there were still
vacancies available, these ex-officials were put on another probation period of three years during which they could be neither promoted nor
transferred.61
No strict provisions, however, applied to the juanfu cases of the Neiwufu officials. After submitting a request to the Department directors,
many were reinstated quickly through illegal means like bribery, without
180
any probationary period, and could be recommended for immediate promotion after reemployment. By contrast, it was much more difficult for the
former outer-court officials to get their position back through financial
contribution.
Some bureaucrats, like Jueluoenzhi, attempted to change these unbalanced policies. In a memorial dated February 16, 1801, he claimed that the
juanfu cases of the Neiwufu should be treated no differently from those of
other agencies. Most importantly, they should be regulated by the same
rules enacted by the Board of Personnel (Libu). Jueluoenzhi suggested
that the Department director(s) work with the Neiwufu censors in deciding those juanfu cases and then notify the Libu. Subsequently dismissed
and demoted personnel should wait for at least three years following the
first probationary period before they could be promoted or transferred
again. It is unclear whether Jiaqing accepted Jueluoenzhis proposal or
not, but the memorial mentioned earlier reveals the Neiwufus increasing
pressure to reform and bureaucratize itself. As a result, this agency gradually lost its privileged status as a self-contained institution beyond any
outer-court supervision.
Before Jiaqings full rise to power, the Neiwufu, like its outer-court counterparts, recommended officials to serve in the Chancery of Memorials
under the watch of the grand councilors. After 1799, however, this supervision power was shifted to the grand ministers in attendance. Generally
speaking, regular capital agencies submitted their candidates names via a
certified explanatory note affixed with their respective official seal. By contrast, the Neiwufu submitted its list of candidates merely through oral recommendation (zhi ping kousu). To ensure procedural conformity and standardization, Jiaqing declared on September 10, 1806, that the selection of
Neiwufu personnel for the Chancery of Memorials should also be documented by an official memo with clear justification and validation.62
Now subject to many outer-court regulations, the Neiwufu directors
were, like the grand councilors, kept under close watch by censors and
berated for any infringements. The agency, for instance, began to face criticism for small formatting errors like missing or added words in documents. Its director, Guangxing, was even executed by Jiaqing in 1808 for
corruption. In addition, as Norman A. Kutcher argues, the emperor also
tried to strengthen his control over the court eunuchs. On March 16,
1799, he stipulated the number of eunuchs allowed to serve in the royal
family and high official households at the first rank.63 All these measures
show the Neiwufus moderate routinization, which helped reconsolidate
central government power by blurring the boundaries between the inner
and outer courts and by restoring their political balance.
181
182
183
A major object of reformist concern was the states policy toward the
White Lotus religion. After Wang Luns revolt in 1774, the Qianlong
emperor took a harder line against Bailian sects than that recommended
by his local bureaucrats, directly provoking the insurrection of 1796.67
One month into the uprising, on February 30, 1796, the grand emperor
ordained that the White Lotus sects be banned forever.68 But this did little to stop the spread of the uprising in the ensuing three years. The pragmatic Jiaqing realized that the time-honored Bailian tradition, given its
atomized nature and flexible teachings, could never be extirpated as his
father had wished. What the state could do was to undermine its organizational base through a systematic program of pacification. The first step
was to acknowledge its existence. On May 21, 1800, Jiaqing issued a remarkable proclamation titled On the Heretical Religious Sects (Xiejiao
Shuo):
It is self-evident that the White Lotus sect is different from the insurgent
group. If one or two Buddhist monks and Daoist priests join the rebel ranks,
should we exterminate Buddhism and Daoism altogether? Likewise, if there
are one or two shengyuan [the county-level exam degree holders] members
among the rebels, should we abolish the Civil Service Examination system?
If the White Lotus sectarians become the insurgents, they should be executed
in accordance with imperial law. For those peaceful believers who have not
engaged in any rebellious activities, how can we allow their extermination?
Given this important distinction, it is apparent that what we have been dealing with in the past five years is a serious case of rebellion. It is not our goal
to get rid of the heterodox sects.69
In this extraordinary passage, Jiaqing laid down the policy of punishing the rebels, not the sectarians (dan zhi congni, bu zhi congjiao). It
drew a clear line between incorrigible insurgents and peaceful White Lotus
believers, thereby separating the former from their broad base of support.
In other parts of the edict the emperor even averred that the genuine
White Lotus sectarians are good people [chizi] of our Great Qing.
These conciliatory remarks apparently were a far cry from the centuryold convention of taking Bailian as shorthand for sectarian movement,
not to mention Qianlongs crusading language labeling the Bailian sects
the most heterodox of the heterodoxies. These remarks introduced a
new rhetoric that fundamentally changed what it meant to be called a White
Lotus believer. For the first time, the Qing authorities reached a reluctant
compromise with this millenarian religion by officially recognizing its existence, at least in name.70 This abrupt policy change set a brand-new tone
for the governmental attitude toward the White Lotus sects in the late Qing.
Moreover, it relaxed the stringent limits set by Qianlong on acceptable
184
forms of sectarian mobilization, thus helping to ease the mounting tensions between state and society.
Due largely to this mollifying policy, the revolt of 1796 became the last
effort of the White Lotus converts in staging a mass revolt against the government. The sectarians gained more freedom to pursue their beliefs and
embarked on a short period of active development from 1800 to 1813.
They even infiltrated the eunuch circle and seeped into the center of imperial rulethe Forbidden City. Such expansion eventually led to the Eight
Trigrams uprising of 1813, which was suppressed in a few months.71
These two sectarian uprisings during the Jiaqing reign are usually taken as
a clear sign of the Qings declining ideological control. The more important point, however, is that the emperor understood this weakness, and
furthermore he took great care in coping with the unwelcome reality.
Later, the policy of easing attempts to suppress the White Lotus religion
gave way to a new spate of persecutions provoked by the uprising of 1813.
The Jiaqing administration, as Lars P. Laamann has observed, changed its
initial policy of benign neglect towards Christianity to one of relentless
persecution during its second half. This was largely due to the presumed
links between the Christian religion and foreign intrusion as well as the
increasing activity of Christians among bannermen.72
Despite such hardening of state policy, in the long run the late Qing
government opted for a more rational, realistic approach on matters relating to the proliferation of unorthodox thought and practices. Local officials like Huang Yupian, for example, went to great lengths to reduce the
White Lotuss appeal by examining its scriptures and refuting its teachings.73 Ideological indoctrination gradually replaced military suppression
as the default state policy toward the Bailian religion. This strategy of
cultural persuasion proved effective in curbing its rebellious potential by
compelling the sectarians to deemphasize the subversive elements of their
ideology (or at least providing incentives to do so). Thus White Lotus sectarianism was gradually neutralized as a political force in the late Qing.
Fewer converts openly used the label Bailian, although this sectarian
tradition did continue under the cover of many derivative congregations
with different names.74
185
it was too difficult and risky. This was especially true when it came to
jumping cases that were not mounted step by step from the bottom as
the law required. Few making capital appeals, moreover, could have their
complaints accepted and handled by the central agencies. Even if they
could, their cases would usually be passed down to the respective provincial government for retrial and resolution. As Jonathan Ocko puts it, unless provincial justice was truly ineffective or distorted, people would not
subject themselves to the fiscal and physical rigors of the journey to Beijing
to lodge the appeal and then head back home for its adjudication by either
the senior provincial officials or a specially commissioned imperial agent.
Despite such great hardship, the late Qianlong reign saw a swelling number of capital appeals, due to pervasive corruption and local maladministration. In response, the aging emperor tried to impose more control on
those that might be heard and, in 1784, to impose strict punishments on
appellants (the great majority) whose cases were decided to be without
merit.75
Risky as it was, making direct appeals in Beijing was the last resort for
most complainants, who had no other way of venting their frustrations
without using violence. Such appeals thus served as an important institutional absorber of tensions that might otherwise lead to radical social
protest. As for the central court, promoting this practice could widen its
communication with local society and thus enhance its knowledge of grassroots situations.76
Emperor Jiaqing was particularly adept at using capital appeals to better control his territorial bureaucrats, checking their wrongdoings and
meting out quick punishments. The White Lotus rebellion and south China
piracy, as he saw it, could be partly attributed to slow and unfair administration of justice in local society. Successful suppression campaigns thus
required that the state fulfil its judicial obligations and ameliorate peoples
grievances by rectifying delayed or misadjudicated cases.77 It is notable
that Qing emperors usually did not supervise the scope and flow of capital
appeals. As Jiaqing observed in an edict: local people file charges at the
offices of the censorate and the capital gendarmerie. Responsible bureaucrats thereupon decide which cases warrant my attention, which can be
turned back to their respective provinces for retrial, and which should be
dismissed right away. . . . [Due to their exclusive power on this matter]
these capital officials often make a decision at will. They often protected
their friends or protgs outside Beijing by forestalling unfavorable accusations leveled against them.78 Determined to change this situation, Jiaqing
announced on his assumption of actual power that all capital appeals had
to be accepted. The edict continued: now the avenue of communication
186
has been broadened, all true information should reach my ears. To recklessly rebut or suppress plaints will lead to more bribery, concealment, and
protest. From now on, the censorate and the capital gendarmerie cannot
flatly reject any appeals from the province. Those serious cases should be
forwarded to me immediately.79
Some officials seem to have been intent on pushing the reform still
further. Jia Yunsheng proposed that no capital appeals, no matter how
minor, should be returned to their respective provinces. This suggestion, if
implemented, would bring about a continuing barrage of petitions that
overburdened the central government. So the Jiaqing emperor quickly dismissed it as utterly impractical, insisting that minor cases be returned to
their original provinces for retrial. Nonetheless, he ordered that, depending on the amount of appeals, a monthly or bimonthly summary report
with a clear explanation of each case should be sent to me. If I discover
that a significant case fails to reach my hands, responsible officials will be
punished harshly.80 To ensure secrecy, Jiaqing also stipulated that pertinent officials should not open the sealed petitions before forwarding them
to him. Consequently, according to the memorial of the vice censor-inchief Jishan, the volume of capital appeals increased rapidly and reached
its peak in 1800. This trend continued until 1806, when there were still ten
to thirty requests per month, in addition to other routine reports.81
Provincial leaders, however, rarely shared the emperors enthusiasm for
fixing the problem of capital appeal. To those senior territorial officials,
such cases were troublesome thorns that increased their workloads and
called attention to their derelictions of duty. They therefore often rejected
local complaints without any investigation. The Fujian peasant Zhang
Kao, for example, submitted his petition to various provincial agencies not
just once or twice but up to sixty-two times, but no one accepted it. Finally, he could not but lodge a capital appeal. To protect themselves and
their unsavory subordinates, most governors and governors-general tried
to stop unwelcome plaintiffs like Zhang from carrying their charges to the
capital. When some of the stubborn plaints finally reached the emperor
and were later remanded back for rehearing, instead of processing the cases
themselves, provincial officials often threw the problem back to lower-level
governments or simply dismissed them as baseless fabrications. Consequently, most passed-down appeals went unheeded or dragged on forever
and few of the accused were brought to justice.82
The resulting judicial backlogs plagued the system of capital appeals.
According to Jiaqings edict of February 5, 1800, most appeals in Zhili
were never adjudicated; these amounted to five hundred to six hundred
cases. The problem was even worse in southeast China, the epicenter of
187
the piracy disturbance. The investigation of the Guangdong governor Bailing suggested that unsolved legal cases like lawsuits, land disputes, and
homicides totaled as many as two thousand in 1806, the high point of
maritime violence. In his four-year term as Fujian governor, Wang Zhiyin
accumulated more than eight hundred unconcluded cases. His successor,
Wen Chenghui, piled up over three hundred cases during his seven-month
service. Given such hopeless prospects, it is hardly surprising that more
and more appellants journeyed to Beijing to complain directly to the central agencies. When justice could not be obtained through peaceful means,
some desperate plaintiffs even joined the pirates in order to vent and rectify their grievances.83
The Jiaqing emperor took great pains to pressure provincial officials to
deal with the accumulation of unsettled cases (qing jian) in a swift and
just way. He issued a series of edicts establishing strict deadlines for the
adjudication of different types of capital appeals. Imperially remanded
cases, for instance, were to be resolved by the governors or governorsgeneral themselves within two months. Petitions remanded by the central
agencies were to be investigated and closed within four months. Any dilatory officials would face stern punishment.84 These strict regulations, once
routinely enforced, proved to be effective in reducing the serious legal backlogs accumulated during the late eighteenth century. Consequently, according to the vice censor-in-chief Wang Ji, the number of unsolved capital
appeals in 1810 was much lower than that during the late Qianlong reign.85
The conjunction of the White Lotus and piracy crises, to be sure, played a
crucial role in bringing about this dramatic change.
Capital appeals served the additional purpose of disclosing and thus
helping to rectify local misadministration, such as the extortion and abuses
of power that occurred over the course of the suppression campaigns. As
the censors Chang Wen and Lu Yan pointed out, overtaxation and plundering by local officials and yamen runners accounted for 8090 percent
of capital appeals. As a result of such remonstrance cases, many county
magistrates in the rebellion-torn areas were cashiered and punished, thus
diminishing their transgressions as a cause of popular protest in the early
nineteenth century.86
Lodging complaints at Beijing also provided opportunities for those
who aspired to advance themselves politically during times of crisis. With
firsthand experience in dealing with social protests, many of these aspirants volunteered to serve on the battlefield without remuneration, hoping
to accumulate useful political capital. Others were eager to send in petitions presenting their solutions to the escalating disturbances.87 This brisk
flow of grassroots wisdom was facilitated by Jiaqings broadening of
188
189
are drained off to their own private coffers. Meanwhile, lower officials
compete with each other in bribing their provincial superiors, even if this
means squeezing local people. Thus sending tribute gifts is the worst evil in
politics, which I understand very well.92
Twelve days after attaining full power, Jiaqing promised that he would
never accept any gifts from territorial officials other than simple local
products like tea and oranges for daily consumption (yong du gongxian).
Moreover, no congratulatory gifts were to be allowed at the birth of imperial sons or grandsons. In stark contrast to his extravagant father, Jiaqing
imposed an atmosphere of economic austerity while fostering his image as
a frugal monarch through personal example and benevolent policies.93
Rumor had it that his imperial robes were repeatedly patched. To cut down
excessive government expenditures, he canceled all repair work on palace
buildings and minimized his journeys to the summer palaces. Moreover, he
reduced the size of the imperial estates around Beijing by 31 percent,
though this meant a considerable loss of rent income for his family. While
Qianlong had made the jade and ginseng trade an imperial monopoly, Jiaqing lifted the prohibition against private trade on February 6, 1799. To
save money, he furthermore stipulated that the amount of jade purchased
by the court should be no more than two thousand catties per year. The
Jiaqing government, as Mark Elliot argues, also ended the Qings longterm effort to improve the bannermens livelihood by buying back their
land, which had been sold to Han Chinese owners.94
Despite his three short visits to the Manchu capital, Shengjing (Mukden), and the Wutai Mountain in Shanxi, Jiaqing never embarked on the
extensive southern tours that characterized his fathers flamboyant rule
and served as centerpieces of High Qing political culture. Michael Chang
asserts that Qianlong deliberately used his last travels to Jiangnan to salvage a dwindling ethno-dynastic solidarity, exceptionalism, and dominance. Such political significance notwithstanding, even the retired emperor
himself expressed remorse at these wasteful endeavors, deeming them one
of the greatest blunders of his six-decade reign. Jiaqing was all too aware
of this fresh lesson. To his mind, imperial journeys to the faraway south,
by nature, put unnecessary burdens on local people, no matter how the
throne might caution against bureaucratic abuses.95
As noted, Jiaqing also abolished the practice of yizuiyin, which had constituted a lucrative source of palace revenue for the Neiwufu and his father. He vowed to never impose such self-assessed fines on faulty bureaucrats in hopes of curbing their corruption and protecting local livelihoods.
The emperor said in his edict of October 27, 1804: ever since I assumed
all the powers of emperorship, I have never ordered any delinquent or
190
Further Retrenchment
Jiaqing made other policy changes that demonstrated his practical retreat
from the surge of state activism during the previous reign. In 1799 he decided to end centralized control over the operation of rural granaries, since
this effort had become too expensive and barely sustainable. As he saw it,
dogmatic insistence of top-down management would provide ample opportunities for state agents to exploit local populaces under the pretext of
securing food provision, which meant more corruption and social disturbance.98 He instead called on gentry elites to take more responsibility and
initiative on this matter. Such deliberate loosening of bureaucratic supervision, rather than a hallmark of state decay, was actually an illustration of
strategic government withdrawal that sought to create more efficient patterns of granary support on a bottom-up basis.
Several factors accounted for this organizational change. The escalating
crises during this period contributed to the Qings financial difficulties,
which led to a gradual reduction in the states supply of public services. On
August 16, 1799, the contemporary official Dai Junyuan memorialized
that at least 70 percent of the Ever Normal (Changping) granaries in the
empire were not filled to their capacities. In fact, from the 1770s onward,
governments capacity to regulate the grain market via the granary system decreased precipitously, and the officials gradually adopted a handsoff policy toward the market.99 The suppression campaigns during the
Qianlong-Jiaqing transition had exacerbated problems by drawing heavily
on the limited stock of many granaries, thus contributing to a general
skepticism about state policies of food supply. As Jiaqing admitted in an
edict of December 1801, the central government simply could not afford
to use its grain tribute ( jiecao), a major source of state revenue, to replenish empty granaries as many local officials had requested. Notwithstanding the states decreasing capacity in food provision, Jiaqing managed to
191
grant a tremendous amount of grain to the refugees across the Han River
highlands as part of his pacification campaign in 1799, 1804, and 1809.100
Like granary support, water control had long been a principal concern
of the Chinese state, symbolizing its power and vitality. Research by Lillian M. Li shows that Jiaqings approach to the north China flood of 1801
marked a fundamental shift in the Qings management of the Yellow River.
The three high Qing monarchsKangxi, Yongzheng, and Qianlongall
actively engaged in matters of water control, striving to implement new
schemes that aimed to forever solve the flooding problem in the north. The
futility of their ambitious attempts was thoroughly exposed when the
Qing faced its worst flooding just two years after Jiaqing took real power.
This horrendous disaster compelled the new emperor to give up on finding
a once-and-for-all solution. Over centuries the inevitable and steady deterioration of the Yellow River siltation presented insurmountable technical
and fiscal challenges beyond the means of any premodern state.101 Seeing
no chance of a permanent solution, Jiaqing began to adopt more modest
goals: focusing on key strategic areas by limiting their flooding, reducing
maintenance costs, and having money available for emergency relief. He
also became ever more concerned with managing the decrepit Yellow
River Administration by curbing its internal corruption. Realizing that
flood control was a recurring necessity, he tried to restrict the amount of
resources the river conservancy extracted from the people and the government treasuries. Based on realistic evaluation of the riparian predicament and the states fiscal weakness, Jiaqings pragmatic policies not
only diminished the danger of floods but also paved the way for the rather
successful water control efforts in the later Daoguang period.102 Thus one
should not take his hard-pressed retreat in river management as a simple
state decline or bureaucratic failure. The 1790s crises, to be sure, contributed to this important pullback by wiping out most of the states surplus
revenue.103
Another major policy shift inaugurated by Jiaqing was the gradual
phasing out of the military allowances for nourishing virtue (wuzhi yanglian). In 1781 Emperor Qianlong suddenly increased the total number of
regular soldiers in the empire by sixty-six thousand. That same year, furthermore, he decided to institute a system of military yanglianyin among
the imperial forces. Since its appearance in the Yongzheng reign, yanglianyin had been given only to civilian officials as a special supplementary
stipend to reduce local exploitation. Yet Qianlong decided to expand this
practice to the Eight Banner and the Green Standard systems in order to
boost sagging military moraleanother evidence of the spiraling operational cost of the Qing politics in the late eighteenth century. These two new
192
193
the state was in dire need of money at this time. One official document records that Shaanxi province was remitted 1,086,000 taels of silver, 80,000
dan of rice[one dan of rice equals about 60 kilograms]; Hubei 3,670,600
taels of silver, 154,100 dan of rice; Sichuan 636,000 taels of silver; Gansu
428,000 taels of silver, 717,000 dan of rice, 2,015,000 bundles of forage;
Henan 207,000 taels of silver. There are still some waivers that have not
yet been reported. According to Yeh-chien Wangs reckoning, Emperor
Jiaqing had lightened the peoples land tax burden to 2.74 percent of the
gross amount of land yields by the end of his reign, which contrasted with
3.3 percent in 1784.110
To further alleviate the pressure on both officials and merchants, Jiaqing
cut the annual quota of trade duties charged on goods passing through
most transit tax stations (queguan) and customs houses (haiguan). Prior to
the Opium War, there were forty-six such collecting agencies in the empire,
established on different strategic locations such as coastal ports, inland
waterways, and frontier zones. Their annual revenue dues to Beijing, in
general, were composed of two major parts: the first was the minimum
base amount (zhenge) that was stipulated by the court and paid to the
Board of Revenue; as a second system of customs assessment, the Yongzheng government added to the preset regular quota a contingent surplus
(yingyu) that should be channeled to the Imperial Household Department.
While the base amounts remained relatively stable through the dynasty
(about 1,900,000 taels of silver in total), the surplus quotas varied greatly
over the high Qing period, given the fluctuations in trading volume and
the fiscal exigencies of the state. In good years, the amounts of yingyu were
often far beyond those of zhenge.111
Over the course of his long reign, the Qianlong emperor tightened his
control over custom revenues, mostly by enforcing the payment of increasing surplus quotas. Starting in the early 1780s, in particular, his court adopted a new, cumulative way of assessing and hiking the amounts of yingyu
quotas imposed on different internal and external customs bureaus. This
aggressive method was called three-year-comparison (sannian bijiao),
which compared the actual amount of yingyu generated by a queguan or
haiguan in any particular year with its biggest annual surplus in the previous three years. If there was a deficit, responsible officials should cover it
with their own funds (in addition to facing possible punishments like demotion and salary reduction), which inevitably fostered extortion and
corruption.112
Take the Yue Haiguan (the Guangdong maritime customs) as an example. As the only customs house that had the privilege of handling Western
trade before the Opium War, it collected the largest amount of duties in the
194
empire and thus was assigned the highest annual quota. This official quota
stood at about 900,000 taels of silver in the late 1780s. As a matter of fact,
due mainly to the practice of three-year-comparison, the actual amount of
customs levies the Yue Haiguan delivered to Beijing kept rising, reaching
at least one million taels in the early 1790s. Its superintendent (known to
Westerners as the Hoppo) was under great pressure from Qianlong and
his regent to maximize revenue from the Canton trade and send it up to
the emperors private purse in the Neiwufu. In response, the superintendent
readily transferred the burden to the licensed Hong merchants under his
direct supervision, who were responsible for collecting the majority of the
duties in Canton.113
As these ocean-trade dealers faced increasing extortions by Heshen and
his henchmen, the Cohong system of state supervision and merchant management experienced unprecedented difficulties in the closing decades of
the eighteenth century. Official corruption and high custom levies, among
other things, forced most Hong merchants to borrow money from Western
traders despite strong Qing prohibition. Worse still, the resulting accumulation of compound interest, with rates as high as 20 percent, further
plunged the former into mountains of debts that invited government suspicion and punishment. Eventually, many of these indebted merchants fell
into bankruptcy after 1777 and had their properties confiscated by the
Qing authorities; some less fortunate ones were even imprisoned and sent
to exile to faraway borderlands. Due to the mass failures of these authorized merchants, the number of Cohong members had fallen sharply in the
late eighteenth century.114
To curtail the extensive official extortion and to facilitate commercial
intercourse, Emperor Jiaqing gave orders on March 18, 1799 to introduce
an empire-wide cut in surplus quotas imposed on most tax stations. Furthermore, he vowed to forever end the counterproductive practice of
three-year-comparison and replaced it with a more fixed and predictable
yingyu system.115 Jiaqings moderate policy was continued by his successor Daoguang, although it failed to solve many problems of the Hong
merchants like that of their spiraling debts. Recent studies such as those by
Yuping Ni have shown that the Jiaqing and Daoguang regimes were able
to maintain the total customs duties at the level of the late Qianlong reign,
which was around five million silver taels a year (with one major exception
during the period of the first Opium War). This new finding suggests that
the overall size of the Qing foreign trade did not shrink during the early
nineteenth century. It thus challenges the widely accepted theory of Daoguang Depression, which posits a steady decline in market activities, due
mainly to silver outflow, during this period of great difficulties.116
195
196
197
and punishing his officials in line with their performance instead of their
status.
Jiaqing, furthermore, was increasingly convinced that the faction-ridden
provincial administration could no longer serve as the primary mobilizer
and organizer of the White Lotus campaign. It was thus imperative to get
around such official barriers and search for direct societal support at the
grassroots level. This aspiration, in reality, was also part of a larger concern of Chinese rulers when envisioning local order. The founding emperor
of the Ming dynasty, Hongwu, for example, distrusted bureaucrats and
desired to create effective grassroots order with local institutions. In the
eyes of the much less ambitious Jiaqing, it was local elites and officials
who were best placed to identify emerging problems and to craft effective solutions during the repression campaign. To get true information
from the battleground, Jiaqing gave the prefectural officials the privilege
of sending secret memorials directly to the throne in accordance with the
rules for provincial treasurers and judicial commissioners.124 As the emperor well understood, the unforgiving terrain of the Han River highlands
and the rebels intricate links with the mountain communities gave them
an overwhelming advantage impossible to overcome with a standard military solution alone. With his regular military system unable to finish the
job, societal forces had to be mobilized and auxiliary methods sought.
This new perception not only necessitated an adjustment of central-local
balance in decision-making but also reinforced Jiaqings drive to resolve
the crisis by deploying more realistic plans and more long-term goals, both
of which had profound bearing on subsequent Qing history.
The first important change was military. The White Lotus rebellion, as
William Rowe claims, marked a milestone in the Qings continuing loss
of control over its military. Jiaqing tried to reassert such control soon after
fully taking control of the throne. On January 20, 1799, to ensure unified
command and coordination, he appointed Lebaolater supplanted by
Eledengbaoas the supreme military commissioner ( jinglue) of the suppression campaign in five provinces. It should be noted that Qianlong,
throughout his sixty years of rule, had named only four jinglue, three of
whom were grand councilors (with Fuheng receiving the ad hoc appointment twice).125 The fact that neither Lebao nor Eledengbao was a councilor
further demonstrates Jiaqings determination to limit the power and prestige
of the revamped Junjichu. In addition to synchronizing the repression efforts, the new emperors major goal in appointing a single commander-inchief was to streamline provincial leadership while encouraging and supervising local military mobilization. As a matter of fact, the jinglue Lebao was
the most important high official to promote the policy of jianbi qingye.
198
Jianbi Qingye
After attaining real power in 1799, Jiaqing began to reverse his fathers
policy on local militarization by adopting the long-abandoned strategy of
jianbi qingye (strengthening the walls and cleaning up the countryside).
On June 3, the emperor issued an edict ordering all rebellion-torn provinces to promote this policy, which consisted of two interrelated parts:
building fortified villages (xiuzhu zhaibao) and grouping and drilling local
armies (tuanlian xiangyong). The overarching goal was to defend widely
dispersed communities by increasing their military preparedness and to
isolate the rebels by cutting off their connections with the local communities. Both objectives could be achieved through concentrating the farming
populace in walled, fortified compounds and removing foodstuffs from
the countryside so that the rebels had nothing to loot.126 The Lanzhou
prefect Gong Jinghan was a major proponent of this locally directed program. The organization of the zhaibao (fortified settlement), as he stressed,
hinged on both the traditional policing mechanism of baojia (household
registration and mutual surveillance) and a new system of militia conscription known as tuanlian (grouping and drilling). Tuanlian was directly derived from baojia, so their functions were parallel or even overlapping. But
this is not to propose that the former was a replica of the latter.127
The two interlinked systems, according to Philip Kuhn, formed the essence of the control-defense duality in local society. As a main agent of
state authority below the county level, the baojia system aimed to disintegrate local community power by superimposing artificial decimal divisions
(bao or jia) that cut across natural settlements. Consequently, power was
restructured from the top down for better control and mutual surveillance.
Baojia posts, at least in theory, could only be assigned to commoners, as a
counterweight to the gentrys dominant local influence.128 By the late eighteenth century, in many parts of the empire, this time-honored system had
become a rather weak tool of social control that had to be supplemented
by the emerging tuanlian. During times of emergency, specifically, the geographical area of bao could be integrated to form tuan and activated by
lian (drilling) under gentry leadership. Ten-odd tuan were further grouped
into a large tuan, charged with the defense of a fortified settlement. As a
decentralized mobilization mechanism, tuanlian aimed to consolidate scattered power from the bottom up for self-defense and mutual support. During the White Lotus rebellion, its significance overshadowed that of baojia
and became the mainstay of local security. Private wealth played a vital
role in funding the tuanlian and zhaibao, whose operation followed the
199
rationale of official supervision and gentry management (guandu shenban). In the first five years of the revolt, for example, as many as 541
zhaibao were built in southern Shaanxi, some of which could accommodate over ten thousand families. Among them, ninety-three were created
with public funds and all of the rest with local private initiatives. A good
case in point is the shengyuan (the county-level exam degree holder) Pan
Dakang, who alone funded the construction of ten zhaibao. Due to their
grassroots influence, gentry led the local defense efforts and became the
key implementers of the jianbi qingye strategy.129
This strategy, in essence, was a militarized system of local control designed to make up for the inadequacy of the regular army and bureaucratic
apparatus. It depended on the mobilization of informal militiamentuanyong (locally recruited militia) and xiangyong (mostly government-hired,
local braves)who were essentially local mercenaries. In every tuan, there
was a register of able-bodied males from which the militia could be selected. Supplied by the local communities, the tuanyong were under the
gentrys close control as an element of both the baojia and tuanlian systems of local defense, so they seldom left their zhaibao. The xiangyong, by
contrast, were often brought into troubled areas by military commanders
or civil officials. Less numerous than tuanyong, they were outsiders with
financial support from the state. Given the ineffectiveness of the regular
army, local militia grew quickly and played an increasingly important role
in the second stage of suppression.130
All in all, the Qing authorities had an ambivalent attitude toward the
use of xiangyong. On the one hand, from the perspective of local officials
and army commanders, they were glad to hire xiangyong as a supplemental force, since they were familiar with local conditions and difficult for
the court to keep track of. With these informal mercenaries serving as the
vanguard and shield in battle, moreover, the casualties of the standard
army could be greatly mitigated, which made it easier to cover up defeat
and even convert it into victory (yanbai weigong). On the other, some generals, like Mingliang, cautioned against depending too much on xiangyong
because, unlike the locally based tuanyong, they were outside regular channels of official control. Many of them brought their own weapons and often refused to give them up after the war and demobilization. The Jiaqing
emperor was not unaware of these problems, but he reassured Mingliang:
your point is well taken. In order to quash the rebels, however, we have
to rely on xiangyong. If you show your suspicion, they will grow restive
and make great trouble for us. Be sure to hide your qualms and keep a vigilant eye. We can deal with this as soon as the suppression ends.131 With the
wide adoption of zhaibao and tuanlian after 1799, the xiangyongs major
200
role shifted from the pursuit of rebels to the defense of local communities.
Like the tuanyong, they began to be incorporated into the localized system
of military control: jianbi qingye. Hinging on zhaibao and tuanlian, this
all-encompassing strategy of local militarization was first implemented
across eastern and northern Sichuan in March 1799 and then adopted
quickly by other rebel-infested areas.132 It greatly limited the space of
White Lotus operations, thus rendering ineffective the rebels mobility,
which was a basic feature of this rebellion.
Consequently, this antirebel campaign became the first internal war
fought largely by mercenaries. After the full rise of Jiaqing, gentry-led
militia attained the formal veneer of legitimacy and served as a basic force
for combating the rebels. Its number was said to have exceeded 400,000
by the end of the rebellion. According to Xuanzhi Dai, without zhaibao,
the rebels could not be repelled; without local militia, the insurrection could
not be suppressed.133 From then on, tuanlian and baojia were further integrated as tuanbao, which became the primary means of community defense
and rebel-suppression in periods of disorder. The Qing government began
to rely on such empowered grassroots forces as a template for dealing with
nineteenth-century emergencies like the Taiping and Nian uprisings. Yet
such uncontrollable militarization of local society, paradoxically, also became a major affliction of the late Qing and early Republican states.
201
202
increasing the price of official salt they sold on market or the fixed quota
of salt they could purchase from the state. Furthermore, many merchants
also petitioned to pay their donations in installments over a long period of
time, thus further consolidating their monopoly position. Often the financially strapped emperor had to give in to some of these requests, despite
their deleterious influence on popular livelihood and salt administration
(especially smuggling). During the Taiping rebellion, the merchants further gained the right to collect commercial taxes like lijin (transit tax).140
Their enhanced power stemmed originally from financial services but spread
to many other areas of local management, with the result being that, like
gentry, they came to share increasing public responsibilities in grassroots
communities.
Like other local elites, merchants also purchased educational degrees
or honorary official titles, which became more available during the suppression campaign. Originally, as Elisabeth Kaske points out, all contributors were required to deliver their silver to the Board of Revenue in
Beijing. Starting from 1800, however, provincial governments gained the
right to sell Imperial Academy degrees like the jiansheng (students of the
imperial college in Beijing) and, furthermore, to use part of the fund to
fill provincial silver reserves. This was the onset of the expansion and decentralization of office selling, which became the most important source
of nontax revenue for the Qing state. The practice grew increasingly
popular, reaching its peak during the great rebellions of the mid-nineteenth
century.141 It must be borne in mind that only a small percentage of educational degrees were sold during the Jiaqing reign, most of which did
not lead to bureaucratic appointments. Thus one should not deem such
transaction a corrupt practice in itself and exaggerate its demoralizing effect on the imperial officialdom. While hurting the dynastys prestige, the
sale of degrees and ranks was not necessarily harmful to the sustainable
operation of the political system. As a key irregular means of elite recruitment, more specifically, it helped alleviate the crisis of upward mobility
that had long tormented the Chinese imperial system. The amount of
money collected from this process, furthermore, reached an unprecedented scale of 70 million taels throughout the years of the White Lotus
campaign and postwar reconstruction. Like merchant contributions, the
sale of offices was a major expedient to meet the states urgent need for
huge military funds during this turbulent period.142 Both practices suggested that the functioning of the Qing regime became increasingly dependent on makeshift measures and ad hoc sources of financial support,
which profoundly affected the state-society relationship in the nineteenth
century.
203
The White Lotus rebellion posed all-round challenges to the social control system of the Qing dynasty. In response, the state had to reconfigure
its various strategies to end this crisis. By no means merely a military endeavor, Jiaqings suppression campaign was also a many-sided project of
pacification that relied on strategies of political propaganda, social relief,
and moral indoctrination. This systematic program aimed to win back the
hearts and minds of the populace, which proved to be increasingly important in the latter part of the uprising.
204
and Sun Yuting, had close ties to Zhu Gui, the emperors closest confidant.
These like-minded officials went to their new posts with a mission to rectify local administration by reinforcing official discipline. On the one hand
they promoted upright and competent officials in the field, including Yan
Ruyi, Liu Qing, Ye Shizhuo, Gong Jinghan, Zhu Yiqian, Fang Ji, and Lin
Lan, most of whom had served in the three-province border region for
unusually long times. On the other hand they severely punished wicked
bureaucrats, including Hu Qilun, Chang Dankui, Zheng Yuanshou, and
Dai Ruhuang, who epitomized the local corruption and flagrant maladministration that provoked the White Lotus rebellion.146 On February 19,
1799, for example, Jiaqing ordered that Hu Qilun be arrested and sent to
the capital for interrogation. From 1796 to 1798, Hu had been responsible
for supervising the distribution of 4,190,000 silver taels of military funds
in Jingzhou, Xiangyang, Anlu, and Yunyang prefectures. According to his
deposition, he had embezzled 83,960 taels during the first two years of the
suppression campaign. Probably in an effort to protect himself, the cunning official had recorded his bribery activities in two pamphlets, complete
with names of recipients, exact dates, and amounts. To Jiaqings great
consternation, with the exception of Eledengbao, almost all highly placed
officials in the campaign had accepted bribes from Hu. The exposure
of others complicity, however, did not save him from execution on
October 12, 1799.147
On February 25, the censor Gu Jiqi impeached the vice-magistrate of
Wuchang, Chang Dankui, for his notorious greed and terrible acts of cruelty. Known as the Long-Headed Devil (Chang Guitou), Chang had served
as the magistrate of Yidu county during the White Lotus investigation
campaign of 1795. On the pretext of searching for the chief sectarian master Liu Zhixie, he threw thousands of innocent people into prison and extorted money from them. Those who did not pay were harshly tortured or
even killed.148 Censor Gu took these notorious practices as the most infamous case in local misrule and the earliest example of the phrase Guanbi
minfan (It was the officials who forced the people to rise up). Chang
Dankui was thus arrested and transferred to Beijing for trial. In May
1799, Jiaqing also ordered the execution of the Hunan tax commissioner
Zheng Yuanshou, who had embezzled over 80,000 silver taels of military
funds. After getting rid of such widely hated local tyrants, the emperor issued this edict: ever since I took full imperial leadership, I have been
streamlining and disciplining the local administration. Those bureaucrats
who had mistreated people were mostly removed from their posts and
punished accordingly. Recently I ordered provincial chiefs to recommend
good officials and to impeach bad ones. What kind of local scourge cannot
205
reach my ears? Why did the rebels still rise up one after another? If they
are victimized by local officials, why not go to the relevant government
agencies to accuse the miscreants?149 In another edict, Jiaqing continued:
if their cases are turned down, they can still go to Beijing for capital appeals. Now that the officialdom has been disciplined, I will not let my
populace suffer any injustice.150
Apparently, as Ho-Fung Hung points out, Jiaqing strove to refresh his
image as a caring monarch deeply committed to benevolent governance.
Although the aforementioned efforts were far from enough to lead the
regime out of its morass of corruption and to rectify abuses in local administration, they did help contain the fire of discontent from below and
improve the popular perception of the state. Both changes contributed to
the dissipation of social protest in the Jiaqing and early Daoguang reigns.151
206
207
earlier. For another example, such lucrative positions as the three vaults at
the Board of Revenue and tax commissioners were generally occupied by
officials of Manchu origin. But after 1799 they became open to Han officials as well.157
To further illustrate the changing Manchu-Han relationship, I shall take
a close look at political participation in the military system during the
White Lotus campaign. As Yung Wei maintains, the recruitment of military elite through irregular paths was closely related to the occurrence of
crises. The White Lotus uprising initiated an abrupt decline in the recruitment of Manchus vis--vis Han Chinese into the military elite. By Jiaqings
reign, most important positions in the military were held by Manchus and
Mongolians. During the antirebel campaign, however, men of Chinese origin, most notably Yang Fang, Yang Yuchun, and Zhang Yuan, gradually
emerged as renowned army commanders. Even xiangyong like Gui Han
and Luo Siju became prominent generals through the suppression campaign.158 Most of these Han Chinese rose via such irregular routes as military service and financial contribution.
The irregular recruitment of the Chinese, especially of commoners, bore
a closer relationship to the occurrence of political crises than the irregular
recruitment of Manchus did. More specifically, the former had a better
chance than the latter of irregular entry into the military elite between the
1780s and the 1860s. Men of Chinese origin monopolized irregular military recruitment during the White Lotus rebellion and again in the 1830s,
on the eve of a large military confrontation between the Qing and the British. In the aftermath of the Opium War, the irregular recruitment of Chinese showed a constant increase until it reached a peak during the 1900s.159
As Philip Kuhns study of Wei Yuan and Feng Guifen suggests, wider political participation tended to correlate with enhancing Qing state power
rather than limiting it. According to Yung Wei, irregular recruitment during crisis periods might have been a necessary adaptation of the Qing system to the compelling demands of both the intra-societal and extra-societal
environments. The adoption of such a policy could be one of the elements
which helped prolong Qing rule. This development nevertheless had farreaching effects on the overall weakening of the Manchu ruling elite because, as nomadic conquerors, they relied on the monopoly of military
skill to maintain their political hegemony in China. As noted, Manchu
military power began to decline during the White Lotus campaign, a trend
that accelerated in the Taiping crisis. As more and more Han Chinese entered into military service, the Manchus military hegemony was gradually
broken, and their political power became insecure. It is for this reason that
the Qing specialist Xiao Yishan has called Jiaqings reign the initial period
208
of Manchu decline. The damaging loss of politico-military power was a prolonged process that started at the end of the eighteenth century, accelerated
in the mid-nineteenth century, and was finally completed in the 1900s.160
In addition, the pressing crises compelled Jiaqing to seek advice and talent from wider circles, which contributed to the changing political geography of the late Qing. Seunghyun Han underscores a southern shift in terms
of the composition of high-ranking court officials in the Jiaqing reign. In
contrast with the late Qianlong period, the early decades of the nineteenth
century saw the rise of influential southern politicians like Dong Gao, Cao
Zhenyong, and Pan Shien. Similar observations can be made about high
officials from central China. By the turn of the century, in Yung Weis estimation, only 5.9 percent of them hailed from this large area. The first
marked increase of elite recruitment from central China occurred in the
early 1800s and stemmed most likely from the decade-long White Lotus
campaign. After a short pause, recruitment from central China rose again
in the 1840s and reached its peak in the 1860s, especially from Hunan. By
the same token, the outbreak of the Opium War and the Taiping rebellion
contributed to this increase.161
Chapter Seven
aving discussed how the Jiaqing state was shaped by the social
crises within, I address in Part III the transnational aspects of these
upheavals, shifting the focus from court politics to foreign diplomacy. This
final chapter brings to light how the piracy disturbance affected the Qings
international capacities and reconfigured its relations with the outside
world, especially with Vietnam and Britain. Over the past two or three decades, scholarly treatment of foreign relations has been somewhat marginalized by the China-centered and localized turn that dominates the field
of Ming-Qing history. There has been little consensus, however, on what
constitutes the China-centered history and how to discover it in the increasingly interconnected and interactive world after the eighteenth century. It is thus a welcome trend that some recent scholarship rejuvenates
the discussion of foreign relations by bringing them back as a pivotal factor in Chinese history.1 These new studies show that one cannot understand Chinas internal logic of historical development without relating it
to a complex array of external factors that often combined to interrupt the
endogenous dynamic of change and turned it in new directions.
This was particularly true in the nineteenth century, when the process of
Qing empire-building became increasingly susceptible to a set of exogenous
developments that profoundly affected domestic changes. Aside from the
primary goal of maintaining internal order, as this chapter illustrates, the
troubled empire had to contend with a series of unprecedented challenges
210
211
212
In spite of occasional armed conflict with the large northern empire, they
were by and large content to settle into the Sino-centric tributary relationship as a sort of asymmetric normalcy, as Brantley Womack calls it. The
less powerful Dai Viet states used their own creative appropriation of the
Chinese system to legitimize their rule, attain commercial profit, and stave
off the threat from the north.7
Vietnams tributary status nonetheless did not preclude the possibility of
a Chinese invasion. Extraordinary internal strife like imperial usurpation
could prompt Chinese military intervention, as happened several times in
the Ming-Qing dynasties. The Tran general Ho Quy Ly, for example, deposed his king and set up the Ho dynasty in 1400. Seven years later, the
Ming regime sent an army south on the pretext of punishing the usurper,
demolished the Ho regime, and ruled Annam territory as a Chinese province. The Ming occupation ended after two decades due to a local uprising
led by Le Loi (who founded the later Le dynasty). After a century of strong
rule, the Le dynasty suffered from problems of weak leadership, political
strife, and popular rebellions. Henceforth, two rival lord families governed
the country: Trinh in the north and Nguyen in the south. Both pledged
loyalty to the weak Le ruler while creating their own parallel courts and
civil services as though they were two separate, competing regional states,
neither able to conquer the other. The resulting political stalemate, combined with mounting social grievances in the late eighteenth century, offered
an opportunity for the three Tay Son brothers in south-central Vietnam to
create a unified Dai Viet. They revolted in 1771 against the oppressive
Nguyen family and overthrew its authority six years later. The sole surviving heir of the vanquished regime, Nguyen Anh, was forced to take refuge
in Bangkok, where he sought help from the Siamese king. In the name of
suppressing the rebels, meanwhile, the Trinh troops marched south and
attacked both the Tay Son and Nguyen powers.8
After a decade of back-and-forth fighting, the Tay Son forces prevailed
in this three-cornered war and established control over much of Annam.
The triumphant rebel regime ostensibly revived the Le dynasty by ending
the two centuries of Trinh-Nguyen rivalry. In reality, the country was divided among the three brothers, who had growing tensions with each
other. Getting tired of his puppet status, the hapless king, Le Chieu Thong,
fled north to China in 1788 and petitioned Qianlong for help in securing
the throne. Under the influence of the Liangguang governor-general, Sun
Shiyi, a cohort of Heshen, Qianlong granted the request by sending an
expeditionary force of twenty thousand to punish the usurper. The
commander-in-chief was none other than Sun himself. Ostensibly, Qianlong decided to intervene because, as a suzerain lord, he had the moral
213
214
of Tay Son naval strategy and indeed of the regimes economy between
1786 and 1802.12
215
the tributary state of Siam to fight their common rival, Tay Son. In another
memorial, Sun Shiyi went so far as to advocate annexing Annam as a Chinese province. Qianlong nonetheless rejected both suggestions, saying that
ruling Annam was an unaffordable luxury for Beijing, as had been proved
many times in history. He set a more realistic goal for the military intervention, which was to fulfill the Qing tributary obligation by punishing
the usurper and reinstating the legitimate king.15
To his great chagrin, Qianlong soon discovered that even this modest
goal was too difficult to achieve. The shameful defeat in Annam forced him
to give up his moral responsibility as a suzerain lord and seek a dignified
exit. To deter further Tay Son aggression, Qianlong reinforced the troops
along the southern frontier and replaced the disgraced commander Sun
Shiyi with Fukangan, a formidable general fresh from the victorious campaign against Lin Shuangwens rebellion in Taiwan. Considering the great
risk of fighting in a far-flung and difficult territory, Qianlong, unlike the
Ming emperors Yongle (r. 14021424) and Jiajing (r. 15211567), refrained
from sending a punitive expedition to Annam. His goal was simply to pacify Annam while keeping it within the Sino-centric tributary order.16
Quang Trung, for his part, also sought to defuse tensions by securing
tributary ties with the north in order to ward off a Chinese-Siamese pincer
attack. He sent three embassies to Canton, the provincial capital of Guangdong, to ask for political recognition. In their meeting with the new Liangguang governor-general, Fukangan, the envoys asserted that the Tay Son
merely aimed to eradicate forces loyal to the dethroned king and, moreover, the unfortunate attack on the Qing army was just an accident.17
To show the sincerity of his apology, Quang Trung arranged for a prompt
repatriation of all captured Qing officials and soldiers. Through a combination of simulated deference and hidden threats, he attempted to ritually
submit himself as a vassal lord under the name of Nguyen Quang Binh
(also referred to by the Chinese name Ruan Guangping).
Both sides had strong incentives to restore their tributary relationship.
For Quang Trung, it meant that China would recognize the sovereignty of
his fledging regime and forgo any efforts to restitute the Le dynasty. For
Qianlong, the arrangement retained the Qings ritualistic supremacy and
helped stabilize the southern border at a minimal cost. He thus accepted
the Tay Son rulers request and agreed to enfeoff him as the king of Annam
in 1789. Qianlong, however, hammered the point that as a precondition
for the investiture, the new king should lead a special delegation to Beijing
to congratulate him on his eightieth birthday.18
Quang Trung was certainly reluctant to undertake this humiliating
trip, something no Vietnamese ruler had done in previous history. As the
216
217
After driving out the Qing force and obtaining the investiture, Quang
Trung seemed to believe that he had intimidated the Qing authorities to
the point that they might make more concessions to the south. Two examples will suffice to explain this. In 1792, he sent an unprecedented
request to the Manchu court that he be given an imperial princess in marriage.22 Boldest of all, according to Vietnamese sources, Quang Trung
further demanded in the same year that the Qing Empire return the two
southern provinces of Guangxi and Guangdong to restore ancient Vietnamese territory. He apparently dreamed of reestablishing the unity of the
Nam Viet kingdom (207111 b.c.), which had extended southward from
what is now Guangdong and Guangxi to the Red River basin. The northern half of this huge territory had been lost to China since Nam Viets
incorporation into the Han Empire. Quang Trung wrote a letter to the Liangguang governor-general, Fukangan, pressuring him to hand the two
provinces back to Annam. This quixotic demand, as one would expect,
immediately met with Fukangans rebuff. Official Chinese documents
mentioned nothing of the Tay Sons extraordinary territorial claim, most
probably because publicizing it would have seriously tarnished the image
of the Great Qing. One edict of Jiaqing, however, mentioned in passing
that both the last Le king and Quang Trung had requested a redemarcation of the overland boundary in an attempt to recover some territories
lost to Ming China.23 Vietnamese sources show that when such diplomatic
efforts failed, the Tay Son emperor upgraded his ambition to taking Liangguang by force. He mobilized war junks, elephants, and troops as the first
step for a northward invasion. He once explained to his generals: We just
need several years to build up our power, then there is nothing to be feared
about the Qing.24
Yet Quang Trung did not have the luxury of time, given his deteriorating health and the mounting threat from the ousted prince Ngyuen Anh.
He died in September 1792 at the age of forty, leaving his ten-year-old son
Nguyen Quang Toan (r. 17921802, Ruan Guangzan in Chinese) on the
throne. The teenaged ruler could do little to stabilize the chaotic country
in his decade-long reign, much less carry out his late fathers ambitious plan.
218
219
mately forced the Qing to renounce its suzerainty claims over the southern
neighbor in 1885.27
Conventional literature holds that the Nguyen court renewed and intensified its commitment to the Neo-Confucian model before the unraveling
of the China-derived tributary order. This revival reached its height during
the mid-nineteenth century, creating the most Confucian dynasty in Vietnamese history. But the China model cannot fully capture, let alone
explain, all the important changes in the complex Nguyen dynasty.28 Revisionist studies by Nola Cooke and other scholars give a more complex
picture, highlighting a southern, non-Sinitic factor behind the faade of
overwhelming Confucian influence. Cooke proposes that the Nguyen state
and society entertained non-Confucian, non-literati possibilities, notwithstanding their structural resemblance to the Qing. A major challenge
confronting the regime, for instance, was how to establish and differentiate itself as a new dynasty from the south, unlike the former traditional
regime that had maintained a northern stronghold. The early Nguyen
rulers ordered their ships to sail regularly through Southeast Asia for the
purpose of training naval forces, learning foreign technologies, and fostering commercial contact. Emperor Gia Long, in particular, put much importance on the development of the shipbuilding industry, maritime expertise, and military leadership. He not only granted more freedom to Catholic
missionaries but also employed Europeans as his court advisors.29 Although this policy was reversed by later rulers, there is no denying that it
led to a rapid transfer of Western military technologies to Vietnam. By the
turn of the nineteenth century, Vietnam had emerged as among the Asian
states most interested in European naval techniques.30
Despite the subtle change in their tributary relationship, the Qing remained an indispensable trade partner for the last Vietnamese dynasty.
The early Nguyen rulers strove to expand trading opportunities with the
north through irregular practices in the tributary system such as repatriation and dispatching Chinese to trade in Guangdong and the like.31 To
develop a quicker and easier maritime route to Chinas richest trading
area, for instance, Gia Long sent official ships to Canton almost every year
to buy much-needed goods. Some of the Chinese items were explicitly prohibited for exportation, like bronze ware and official garments decorated
with designs signifying the Qing sovereignty. The burgeoning volume of
the merchandise shipped back to Vietnam often was many times larger
than the quota set by the Manchu court. As a conciliatory gesture, Chinese
officials usually turned a blind eye to the unauthorized trade organized by
the Nguyen authorities. These irregular practices facilitated the transition
to more flexible intergovernmental commercial intercourse and to more
220
equal interstate relations. An early English source dated 1852 depicts Gia
Long as a man of enterprise and great renown, who prized European science and despised Chinese antiquated lore. Like Quang Trung before
him, he not only harbored the dream of recovering the ancient Vietnamese
homeland in Liangguang but also took significant steps to reinforce an
autonomous identity for his newly unified country.32
The following episode was a clear case of this state-making effort. In
August 1802, the newly enthroned Gia Long dispatched an envoy to Canton, requesting investiture and bearing tribute. As a special gift, the embassy brought with it three captured Chinese pirate ringleaders much
wanted by the Qing authorities. They also returned the imperial patent
and seal that had been bestowed by the Qing on the last Tay Son ruler,
Nguyen Quang Toan. Despite such an act of goodwill, Emperor Jiaqing
temporized on the conferment of kingship until it was confirmed that
Nguyen Anh indeed had the entire country under his control.33 It is noteworthy that, like Gia Longs commercial missions, this tribute envoy traveled to Canton by sea rather than across the northern land border via the
Zhennan Pass in Guangxi, which had long been the designated gateway
for the Vietnamese envoys to enter China. Emperor Jiaqing disapproved of
the Canton tributary route since it clearly violated the established procedure. His warning was not heeded by the Vietnamese until the following
December, when Gia Long sent the first overland delegation to Beijing.34
The goal of this second mission was to request Qing permission to
change the name of the Nguyen state from Annam to Nam Viet, which
reflected a subtle change in the two kingdoms relations at the turn of the
nineteenth century. For almost a millennium, successive Chinese dynasties
had referred to their southern neighbor as Annam. In proposing the new
national title Nam Viet, Gia Long emphasized the historical grounds of
Vietnams autonomy from China by harking back to the glorified era of its
first independent kingdom. He thus asserted a strengthened identity for his
newly unified state and, furthermore, used it to prop up his own legitimacy. As for the Jiaqing emperor, he evidently had a disdain for the proposed name since it referred to an area encompassing the huge Chinacontrolled territory, including todays Liangguang.35 His attitude is most
clearly documented in a decree of December 1802: the name of Nanyue
[Nam Viet] entails a vast territory which, according to historical records,
included the current jurisdiction of Guangdong and Guangxi. Even though
Ruan Fuying [Chinese name of Nguyen Anh], a far-flung barbaric ruler,
came into possession of the entire Annam, it should not exceed the former
territory of Jiaozhi [old name of Annam]. How can he call his country
Nanyue? Probably Ruan Fuying made this request in hopes of testing our
221
222
crossing over from the south to the north. As Murakami aptly notes,
we see that the same name implying the Vietnamese are outcasts also
casts an arrow on the territory of China!40
Border disputes also attest to the strained relationship between the two
regimes. In late 1805, Nguyen officials of Xinghua town crossed illegally
into Qing territory and distributed handbills among six local chieftains
(tusi) on the Yunnan-Vietnamese border. Under the jurisdiction of the Jianshui county of Linan prefecture, the six border tribes (liumeng) had
been incorporated into the Qing Empire since the Kangxi reign (1662
1722). The leaflets nonetheless claimed that these tribes were in the former
territory of Annam, which should be returned to the Nguyen. They urged
the six tusi to shift their allegiance back to the unified Vietnamese state.
The Qing court protested and denounced this encroachment on Chinese
territory. During the late Qianlong reign, the court had already rejected
two similar Annamese requests to redemarcate the border.41 In other cases
of territorial dispute the Jiaqing government demonstrated more flexibility
and pragmatism. According to Murray it tacitly recognized the Paracel islands as a defense perimeter for Vietnam and [chose] not to notice when
the Vietnamese took possession of them in 1816.42
The relations between what is now China and Vietnam, as Keith Weller
Taylor sees it, have traditionally been expressed in terms of vassalage.
Despite its outward acceptance of tributary protocol, the Nguyen regime
developed a heightened sense of independence and equality, evident in its
diplomatic vocabulary with reference to the northern neighbor. Vietnamese officials increasingly used words and expressions of neutral meaning to
replace or downplay the conventional rhetoric of tributary hierarchy. The
term diplomatic relations (bangjiao), for example, took the place of
tribute (chaogong), while tributary envoy (gongshi) was relabeled
emissary to the Qing (ru qingshi).43 Such alterations in diplomatic rhetoric, albeit hardly unprecedented, are indicative of the Nguyens efforts to
put Vietnam on a more equal political footing with China. Along with the
aforementioned territorial conflicts, these changes demonstrate the internal strain that existed within the Sino-centric tributary system well before
it was overwhelmed by Western incursions.
In sum, the hierarchical ties that bound Vietnam to China in the tributary system appeared to have weakened around the turn of the nineteenth
century. In this Sino-centric system, by and large, a loyal vassal state
should eschew conducting direct foreign relations with states other than
its suzerain lord. The spectacular military victory against the Qing invasion, however, fortified Annams self-image as an independent great power;
it also convinced the Vietnamese of the prevalence of their own world or-
223
der that was equal, if not superior, to the Chinese one. While acknowledging the Qing suzerainty, the increasingly empowered Vietnam harnessed
the tributary framework to build up its own regional order by developing
closer ties with Southeast Asia and the West. In the Tay Son era Quang
Trung had engaged in diplomacy with European outposts in Macao and
the Philippines in an effort to set up direct trading relationships with the
Portuguese and the Spanish. The early Nguyen rulers displayed a keen interest in the rise of Singapore as an international port after 1819.44 Gia
Longs enthusiasm for introducing Western technologies continued
throughout the subsequent reign of Minh Mang (r. 18201841). From the
1780s to the 1840s, a self-assured Vietnam continued to expand at the
expense of its non-Chinese neighbors, Siam, Cambodia, and Laos, asserting regional supremacy and eliciting tribute. Seeking to assimilate the
barbarian peripheries, the growing state increasingly viewed itself as a
civilization model that represented the center of a galaxy of lesser powers. Such cultural confidence and state expansion lasted until the midnineteenth-century intervention of French imperialism. Emperor Jiaqing
ridiculed Vietnams claim to centrality and its mimicking of Qing tributary
order: the King of Annam deems All under Heaven his own domain and
the four seas his own territory. This is really ignorant and arrogant.45
Such grumbling nonetheless indicates Jiaqings increasing concern over the
strength of the newly unified Vietnam. Another example of this attitude is
furnished by his pragmatic response to the piracy disturbance, which represented a major deviation from previous Qing methods of dealing with its
southern neighbor.
Readjustment of the
Sino-Vietnamese Relationship
Throughout much of his long reign, Emperor Qianlong generally took an
interventionist approach to foreign policy and played an activist role in the
affairs of neighboring states. He claimed that to those barbarians who go
against our will, we attack them to manifest our great power; to those who
follow our guidance, we honor them and offer our kindness.46 Among his
Ten Great Military Campaigns, only the war against Lin Shuangwens
uprising was fully justified and convincingly necessary. Many others were
waged on the pretext of defending the Qing suzerainty and achieved little
other than to dissipate limited state resources. The wars against Burma and
Annam, for instance, were expensive and bungled campaigns that should
have been avoided. The Annam misadventure, in particular, violated the
224
225
With memories of the military fiasco still fresh, Jiaqing went to great
lengths to avoid conflict with the Tay Son. To wage another frontier war
would stretch already tight resources to a breaking point, thus jeopardizing the faltering White Lotus campaign across the Han River highlands.
Jiaqing thus expressly prohibited the Qing navy from pursuing pirates
fleeing crossing the fuzzy jurisdictional line of Bailongwei and Jiangping.
As Murray contends, on this occasion Chinese wariness against overstepping administrative bounds served to contain the conflict and prevent irritation from turning into hostility.55
226
227
maximize the gain of the imperial center at great expense. When seen in
this light, it becomes apparent that neither the familiar story of Western
challenge, Chinese response nor the exclusively China-centered histories
have given due credit to the changing interaction between the suzerain
power and its regional neighbors; thus they cannot fully explain how the
late Qing Empire reconstituted itself as a territorialized nation-state in the
nineteenth century.
Jiaqing in other ways pursued a measured foreign policy. He instructed
his officials to stay on the sideline and favor neither side in the barbaric
fighting between the Tay Son and its southern Nguyen rival. This policy
of neutrality is surprising, since the former was a Qing vassal while the
latter was not. Jiaqings hidden intention was to use the rising Nguyen
power to weaken both the Tay Son regime and its Chinese pirate mercenaries.60 When Nguyen Anh emerged as the eventual victor, Jiaqing had no
qualms about sanctioning the new usurper by enfeoffing him as the king of
Annam. All these show that, as Susumu Fuma argues, regardless of how
often the throne was usurped, there was no longer any need to chastise the
usurper. Investiture had originally been a question of ritual propriety for
maintaining a hierarchy of obligations and rank, but it was now completely divorced from any questions of propriety. Investiture had instead
become something similar to confirming as champion the winner in a
combat sport in which any methods can be used in any way so long as the
combatants do not turn on the referee.61
Jiaqing also chose to stand aloof from Southeast Asian politics. He refused to intervene when tributary states, including Siam, Cambodia, and
Laos, called on the Qing to check Vietnamese aggression in their regional
power struggles.62 The emperor also declined requests from Nepal for military assistance against incursions from British-controlled Bengal. He invoked the Qing principles of impartiality and territorial sovereignty in
imperial edicts: our Celestial Kingdom pacifies every tributary state in an
equal way; how can we help you while alienating the others? And: both
China and her vassal states have definite boundaries that should not be
violated.63 Behind this high-sounding rhetoric of noninterference was Jiaqings clear understanding of the Qings limits in shaping events beyond
its borders. He was rightly worried that the dynastys imperial might and
military prowess could no longer effectively deter the Vietnamese and British expansions around China. Most strikingly, the emperor even tacitly
approved Nepal becoming a concurrent vassal state of Britain, which was
a sea change from Qianlong-era diplomacy.
Unlike his father, Jiaqing went to unusual lengths to avoid getting caught
up in foreign conflicts, even at the price of hurting the majesty of his
228
empire.64 His primary political concern was to take care of domestic business by fortifying Chinas border defense and by maintaining stability
within clearly specified state boundaries. In leaving troubled neighbors to
their own fates, he acquiesced to the fact that the Middle Kingdom did not
have the international capacity to meet its moral obligations as the supreme patron of the tributary network. Under such circumstances as those
of the nineteenth century, the Qing could hardly oppose its vassal states
concluding treaties with other foreign powers, including Western ones.
This diplomatic retreat unquestionably affected Chinas political prestige
and reduced its influence over neighboring countries. In conjunction with
the catastrophic defeat in the Opium War, this retreat heralded the final
departure of these countries from the China-centered tributary framework
after the 1860s.
Viewed from another perspective, however, Jiaqings political withdrawal helped the crisis-ridden empire refocus on domestic order by absolving itself of increasingly unsustainable external responsibilities. In the
meantime, the Qing emperor lowered the ritual requirement for Siam and
Burma on their performance of tributary protocol.65 For instance, their
tribute missions to Beijing became less frequent, and the amount of tribute
gifts was also reduced. All these adjustments demonstrate how an overburdened empire adapted to a worsening geopolitical environment by acknowledging its limited capacities and moderating its political agenda.
Such pragmatic changes also provided the Qing with more flexibility in
settling relations with its neighbors and other foreign countries.
Takeshi Hamashita contends that the period from the 1830s to the
1890s witnessed multilateral and multifaceted intra-regional negotiations among the East and Southeast Asian states.66 This kind of negotiation, as this study suggests, can be traced back to the turn of the nineteenth
century. A realignment of regional power started to emerge during this
chaotic period, when rising tributary states like Vietnam no longer maintained as submissive a relationship with China as before. Meanwhile, the
Middle Kingdom was forced to cut back on some suzerain obligations,
due to a combination of domestic troubles and external crises. A rebalancing of demands, roles, and expectations ensued that prompted a variety of
multilateral negotiations within and without the tributary system. Rather
than the Opium War, in my view, this was the real beginning of the Qings
global repositioning in the final century of its rule. Seen from this vantage
point, the confrontation with the West and the rise of nationalism should
be examined in the context of intensified tensions within the tributary system. Furthermore, as Hexiu Quan argues, the rise of Chinas modern diplomacy was not an abrupt departure from the traditional one.67
229
230
pivotal location for global trade between China, Japan, Southeast Asia,
India, and Europe, Macao became the best and most important pillar the
Portuguese had in all the East. Its phenomenal growth also made the descendants of Da Gama the only carrier between China and Europe for
almost a century.68
Macaos golden age of development ended around the time of the MingQing transition in the 1640s. Thenceforth, its status declined as the Portuguese lost their monopoly over the lucrative trade with Tokugawa Japan
and thus had to face competition from the newly arrived English and
Dutch. Worse still, the Portuguese suffered under the restrictive trade policies of the Manchus, who were busy fighting the Ming loyalists on the
southeast coast.69 Macaos fortunes nonetheless improved greatly with the
establishment of the Canton system in 1757, which confined all Western
trade to the single port of Canton. The Qing court commanded Western
ships to stop first at Macao for the purpose of securing entry documents,
food provisions, and river pilots. Consequently, the peninsula reemerged
as a crucial gateway into China and the base for the trade of all nations
with Canton.70 This privileged position remained unaltered until the opening of five treaty ports on the south China coast after the first Opium War.
Prior to this war, Macao was not a colony in the conventional sense because
it fell under the joint control of the Portuguese administration through
Goa and the Chinese government though Canton prefecture.
The Portuguese approach to China, unlike that of the English, rested
primarily on a sense of economic pragmatism. Their contribution to the
suppression of late Ming piracy had helped them gain settlement rights in
Macao in 1557. During the next three centuries or so, the Portuguese not
only acknowledged the Chinese ownership of Macao but also paid a symbolic annual tribute of 5001,000 silver taels.71 In keeping with Qing
imperial protocol, in addition, they practiced obligatory rituals like the
kowtow to show their submission. Such conciliatory efforts largely explain their enduring success at Macao and enabled them to gain a large
amount of self-governing power in the settlement. The city eventually turned
into a semiautonomous territory with its own municipal government
elected by local Portuguese inhabitants. Because of the various privileges
bestowed on them, the Portuguese deemed themselves the most favored
foreigners in Qing China. As many as twenty-five of their cargo ships were
tax exempt, which saved them hundreds of thousands of silver taels every
year. The thriving Canton trade, totaling tens of millions of silver taels as
the eighteenth century came to a close, attracted foreign merchants from
all over the world. The Portuguese set up commercial guilds to trade with
them, apart from letting out extra houses and charging high rent.
231
None of this, however, meant that China had given up control over
Macao. The Xiangshan county of Canton prefecture administered Macao
on behalf of the central government. In 1573, the Qing authorities built a
fortificationwith a barrier gate and guardhouseacross the neck of the
peninsula that joined the mainland and established a customs office in
1688. The eighteenth century saw a further intensification of Qing bureaucratic oversight: beginning in 1763 a Chinese official was posted in
Macao, followed by a district magistrate at midcentury and a vice magistrate in 1800.72 Under the close watch of the Qing authorities, the Portuguese did not become the real masters of Macao until the end of the
Opium War. Even after living there for nearly three centuries, they were
232
still little more than a lucky tenant treated with special favors by the Chinese landlord.
In accord with the Qings one-port monopoly, Western merchants could
only stay in Canton during the trading season from October to March.
From 1760 onward, the Qing authorities permitted them to withdraw to
Macao and live in housing rented from the Portuguese when the season
closed. The flourishing trade enticed many Western countries to send official envoys to China who also became long-term residents in Macao. The
steady influx of cargo and money also, of course, attracted to the city a motley assortment of disorderly elements like bandits, pirates, and itinerant
peddlers. By the 1810s, Macao had become an important base for piratical
activities as well as a center for opium smuggling and distribution.73 The
two problems aggravated each other as more and more sea raiders became
involved in contraband trade.
The foremost threat confronted by the Portuguese enclave, however,
came neither from meddling Chinese officials nor predatory sea bandits
but from competing European powers. As Demetrius Charles Boulger remarked in the 1880s, the position of Macao was so advantageous that it
presented a standing temptation to all interested in the commerce of the
Chinese seas to wrest it from the feeble hands of those who held it.74 A
sketch of the changing balance of power among the Western states in
Asian waters will make it possible to understand this threat. Over the
course of the seventeenth century, Portugal had been supplanted as the
dominant European power in this area by the Netherlands, whose place,
in turn, was superseded by Britain with the start of the Industrial Revolution. As early as 1622, interestingly, the Dutch and the English had joined
forces to invade Macao and had been fended off by the Portuguese.75 Despite increased Western encroachment and trade in the Pearl River delta,
according to Leonard Blusse and other scholars, the eighteenth century
remained largely the Chinese century in the South China Sea. Thanks to
their expansive commercial networks and advanced organization skills,
Chinese junks swarmed like bees all over the South China Sea and controlled the trade in Southeast Asia until 1770. Consequently, European
interlopers had to rely on the Chinese and other local merchant communities if they were to establish themselves commercially in the existing
trading systems. The circumstances changed in the nineteenth century,
however, as the British and French navies took control of the South China
Sea and forcefully opened up the Chinese market to European trade and
missionary activities.76
233
234
China and in the Indian seas. The English felt in constant danger that a
changing political climate in Europe might cause Macao to be closed to
them.78
For much of the eighteenth century, the British tried to gain their own
trading foothold in China through different strategies, but with no success.
As the only connecting link between the two states, for instance, the EIC
made an aggressive attempt to set up a post in Ningbo, a coastal city in the
northeast of Zhejiang province, by sending ships there in 1755, but the
Qing responded by prohibiting Western trade at ports other than Canton
two years later. Notwithstanding this major setback, the Companys trade
with China continued to expand under difficult conditions. Considering
the EICs inability to change the monopolistic Canton system, meanwhile,
the English government intervened and favored a softer approach to the
Qing, mainly by playing on the Qings obsession with its own ritual superiority. The English government sought direct communication with the
Manchu court through tribute-like embassies, the first of which was led by
Lieutenant Colonel Charles Cathcart. But this diplomatic mission had to
be aborted when Cathcart died of consumption en route to China in
1788.79 Four years later, the British government sent a more imposing envoy of ninety-five people under Lord George Macartney, in the name of
congratulating Emperor Qianlong on his eighty-third birthday. This famed,
well-prepared delegation reached China in 1793 and received a warm reception from the Qing court. Despite the hospitality and his extensive
diplomatic experience, Macartney failed to enhance Britains trade situation in China by securing new ports besides Canton. Yet it is noteworthy
that the envoy did succeed in its secret goal of reconnaissance. After returning to London, one member of the embassy entourageLieutenant
Henry William Parish of the Royal Artilleryfiled a detailed intelligence
report on the military defenses of Macao and, furthermore, devised a plan
of invasion.80 He calculated that a British occupation of Macao would
lead to either the rise of contraband trade or the independence of south
China from the Qing Empire, both of which could nullify the CantonCohong trade monopoly. Parish opined that the British should use Macao
as both a springboard for colonizing south China and leverage against
other Western countries. He reasoned that in the event of war with the
different powers of Europe, Macao may be thought of the utmost consequence to England, as a refuge for their trade in these seas, as enabling
them to cut off the trade of such powers with China. This intelligence
report has led some historians to believe that the object of the Macartney mission was to prepare a raid against Macao as much as to open
China to trade.81 True or not, it certainly boosted the Britishs optimistic
235
sense of aggression, which paved the way for their invasions of Macao in
1802 and 1808.
236
While the French conceived the undertaking, Boulger writes, the English had executed it. Richard Wellesley, the sixth governor-general of
India and a strong believer in British imperialism, decided to send troops
to Macao before the French might get there.85 On February 27, 1802, a
task force of six ships commanded by Captain Edward Osborn and Lieutenant Colonel Robert Hamilton arrived at Lintin, the island anchorage
twenty-nine kilometers northeast of Macao. Looking on Macao as a Portuguese possession, British leaders had given little thought to how this
armed expedition might violate the sovereignty rights of China. Neither
did they think it necessary to obtain authorization from their oldest ally,
Portugal. Wellesleys belligerent attitude is evident in his letter to Richard
Wall, president of the Select Committee of Supercargoes of the EIC resident
in Canton: in the event of opposition on the part of the Governor of Macao, this Portuguese settlement would be subdued by force of arms. The
Select Committee, however, counseled the governor-general against such
an imprudent strategy, saying that unless the consent of the Portuguese is
previously obtained every attempt to procure the Sanction of the Chinese
Government to the disembarkation of the Troops in any part of their territory will be entirely fruitless and of no avail.86 Acting on this advice, Osborn and Hamilton began negotiating with the Portuguese for a peaceful
takeover of Macao so as to prevent it from falling into French hands.
The governor of Macao, Jose Manuel Pinto, did not trust the uninvited
guests, nor was he persuaded by the British talk of an impending French
attack. The governor feared that the Portuguese settlement would be lost
forever if he accepted Britains help. He thus tried to stall for time, citing
the need to wait for orders from higher authorities at Goa. Wellesley had
little patience for waiting, since reports had already convinced him that
British military action at Macao would not antagonize the Qing or disrupt
the Canton trade. He thus sent a letter of ultimatum to the Portuguese
governor, presenting him with the stark choice of surrendering the city or
facing destruction.87 Intercepted by the Select Committee, this letter never
reached Jose Manuel Pinto, though the governor no doubt understood the
gravity of the situation. He thus protested the British plans while simultaneously petitioning Jiqing, the governor-general of Liangguang, for protection.88 Alarmed by the mounting threat, Jiqing chastised the British for
their aggression and ordered their naval fleet to leave Macao immediately.
When the invaders refused, the indignant governor-general suspended
British trade and cut off their food supplies. On March 30, 1802, word
reached Macao that France and England had signed the Treaty of Amiens
in late 1801, ending their decade-long hostilities in the French Revolutionary Wars. The English expeditionary force thus had no excuse to continue
237
its stay in Macao. After some delay, by June 5 it had entirely withdrawn
from Chinese waters and sailed back to India.89
This incident apparently ended to the satisfaction of the Chinese authorities. After all, the British had failed to enter the city of Macao, and
the Qing had been able to dispel the invaders without firing a single shot.
To protect the Canton trade that was a vital part of the local economy,
Jiqing withheld information from Jiaqing and reported favorably on the
English. He depicted their invading vessels as escorting warships to
play down the severity of the crisis and dampen the emperors alarm.90
Nevertheless, this British expedition frightened the Portuguese. On August 19, 1802, two Portuguese missionaries working in the Imperial Bureau of Astronomy wrote a petition to the Qing court on behalf of their
government at Macao. They attacked the English for conspiring to take
over the peninsula and called for tougher Chinese policies against such
acts of invasion:
In Europe, the violence and craftiness of the English are universally known.
Previously, under the pretext of trade, they annexed a great kingdom, Mengkao-er [Bengal], in the lesser Western Ocean (India). To begin with, they only
leased a small place to stay, but gradually they sent more and more ships and
men. In the third year of the Chia-ching (1798), they finally swallowed up
this kingdom which is adjacent to Tibet, a place the Middle Kingdom must
know. This is not the only area in which the English have achieved their ends
under the name of trade. For the Celestial Empire to allow them to live in the
neighborhood of China is not a good policy and will not lead to permanent
peace.91
This letter was sufficiently compelling to alarm the Jiaqing emperor. But
reassuring reports from local officials soon convinced him that no foreign
countries, including Britain, could menace the dynasty. To appease the Portuguese, Beijing signed a convention with them that formally placed Macao under the protection of the Qing emperor. In return, the Portuguese
pledged that they would not admit any foreign troops into their settlement
without previous Chinese consent.92 With this agreement, both sides reaffirmed the Qings sovereignty over Macao.
238
was disturbed by the swarming pirate fleets that blockaded the passages,
plundered vessels, and took hostages. Such maritime chaos, as Joanna
Waley-Cohen puts it, provided Europeans with a useful pretext for bending Chinas rules prohibiting the presence of armed foreign vessels in its
territorial waters. At first, local Qing authorities declined the British
offer of help and instead turned to the Portuguese at Macao, who also
volunteered to provide naval assistance.93 In return, the Portuguese presented a nine-point request to expand their power and interest in Macao,
most of which was rejected by the Chinese. Without Jiaqings approval,
the two sides signed a convention that commissioned four Portuguese
patrol ships to join in a campaign against the pirates around Macao. But
such small-scale collaboration was far from sufficient, and moreover, the
Portuguese ships used their routine patrol off the Canton coast to facilitate opium trafficking. Unable to ensure order along the trade route,
Emperor Jiaqing finally accepted the British proposal to dispatch warships to escort the EICs cargoes to and from the mouth of the Pearl
River.94
Emboldened, the EIC Select Committee made another proposal to the
Qing provincial government.95 It requested that its naval convoy be allowed to sail through Bogue (Humen in Chinese, or Boca Tigris as the Europeans called it, the Tigers Mouth) and cruise near the inner harbor of
CantonWhampoa (Huangpu)twenty kilometers below the provincial
capital of Guangdong. This was an audacious request, since no foreign
warship was allowed to enter the Tigers Mouth, the first and the most
important sea pass leading to Canton. On October 24, 1804, the president
of the Select Committee, John W. Roberts, discussed the proposal with the
superintendent of customs at Canton (Hoppo). In an attempt to persuade
the Qing official, the English merchant chief made veiled threats by accentuating the enormous value of the trade at stakenot less than twenty
million taels, import and exportthe magnitude of the merchant fleet endangered, valued at thirty million taels, and the Chinese revenue of not
less than 1,300,000 taels a year, which would be lost if the trade came to
an end. The Hoppo, unimpressed by Robertss lecturing, repudiated his
request on the grounds that it flagrantly violated the law of the Celestial
Dynasty. Five months prior to this fruitless meeting, the king of England,
George III, had sent a gently worded letter to the Jiaqing emperor along
with some gifts. The king suggested, according to the translation of the
Chinese version, that if there is any way in which Your Majesty can use
my services, I shall be very glad to serve Your Majesty.96 Jiaqing knew
clearly that the English monarch was talking about sending warships to
the south China coast to help quash the sea bandits, but in his reciprocat-
239
240
241
242
243
lesson. The Select Committee was behind him, asserting the impossibility
of giving way to the Chinese so long as they persevered in their haughty
conduct.113 Drury thus returned to his warships, threatening to break
through the blockade and to raid Wus provincial government offices in
half an hour. When this ultimatum did not work, the British advanced, at
which the Chinese fort fired on one of their ships. The admiral ordered an
attack, but for some reason his order was not obeyed. Drury did not resort
to further force. Unwilling to touch off a full-scale war that would certainly ruin the China trade, he instructed his warships to retreat to Macao
after his futile show of force.
After this dramatic turn of events, Wu realized that the emperor could
no longer be kept in the dark. As soon as Drury evacuated from Canton,
on September 4, Wu sent Jiaqing an urgent memorial summarizing the
whole event, with the admirals letter attached. Wu also recommended that
all supplies for the British be terminated and that no Chinese should serve
them in business or at home.114 On learning of the dire situation, Jiaqing
immediately issued a fiery edict sanctioning this embargo and food blockade, to begin on September 26. He also lambasted the admiral for his selfproclaimed most benevolent intentions:
The law on the national defense of the Celestial Empire is extremely severe.
We will not allow anyone to challenge it. If the Portuguese and the French
will fight and slay each other, that is a matter that concerns only the barbarians. We, the Middle Kingdom, will not intervene. In recent years, Burma and
Siam have warred against each other, and often they appealed to China for
help. Yet the Grand Emperor treats both of them equally and without partiality. Both China and her vassal states have definite boundaries that should not
be violated. Remember that the warships of China have never sailed overseas
to land and quarter troops on your territory. However, the warships of your
country dare to sail into Macao to land and live there! This is indeed a grievous and rash blunder. You say you fear that France might attack the Portuguese; do you not know that the Portuguese are living in Chinese territory?
How dare the French invade and plunder at the risk of offending the Celestial
Empire? Even if France conceived such an idea, the law of the Celestial Empire is adamant and effective. We would not tolerate an invasion by the
French, and would immediately send our mighty army to suppress and annihilate them in order to maintain our maritime defense. There is no need of
your country to send soldiers here to act as protectors of the Portuguese.115
244
In this important edict, Jiaqing charged that the British clearly understood the waters around Macao to be Chinese territory and that their unauthorized intrusion was an outright assault on Qing sovereignty. Most
striking, the emperor toned down the much celebrated rhetoric of tributary superiority, which had long dominated Chinese thinking about their
relationship with the outside world. He instead took the moral high ground
through another route: by emphasizing the relatively new norms of formal
equality, territorial right, reciprocity, and nonintervention, which should
appeal much more to Western sensibilities by exposing their organized
hypocrisy. As Stephen D. Krasner claims, organized hypocrisy can be found
in those situations in which states ostensibly advocate the use of some
normative principles to regulate interstate relations but their policies and
actions blatantly violate these overarching rules.117
Even though we tend to associate the aforementioned norms of equality,
territorial right, and nonintervention with the Westphalian sovereignty,
they were not utterly alien to Qing political thinking. Neither did they necessarily result from the process of Western challenge, Chinese response.
The notion of territorial right and political equality had germinated amid
the regional power brokering within the tributary system by 1800. As for
drawing rather clear borders on a map, it was part of a repertoire the Qing
had used before (albeit rarely), as evidenced in the signing of the Treaty of
Nerchinsk with expansionary Muscovy-Russia in 1689. How much of a
trend the two cases represent is subject to interpretation. In any event, they
showcase the Qings willingness and capacity to deal with changing geopolitical conditions by modifying their conceptions of sovereignty and by
appropriating new sources of legitimacy. Here it would be helpful to use the
term crystallization to describe Jiaqings foreign policy reforms, which occurred not by the laborious creation or convenient introduction of wholly
new norms or principles but by a reorganization of practices and ideas
that were already present in Chinese diplomatic tradition. The south China
piracy and the two Macao incidents acted as a sort of catalyst, reinforcing
certain submerged ideaslike pragmatism and noninterventioninherent
in the operation of the tributary system. In short, practical realpolitik logic
could reinvigorate old notions of transnational interaction, thus putting the
subsequent negotiations of the Opium War in a different light.
245
At the end of his edict, Jiaqing issued a stern warning to the British invaders that an army of eighty thousand men had been sent forth to annihilate them. Later, the emperor turned on Wu Xiongguang and the Guangdong governor Sun Yuting, scolding them for their delayed report and
pusillanimous response to the repeated foreign invasion. Jiaqing also reprimanded both provincial officials for caring more about customs duties
than the dignity and security of their empire. The throne immediately dismissed both, sending Wu to exile in the faraway northwest.118
The Chinese ultimatum achieved its desired effect. Admiral Drury finally
gave in after three months of negotiations with the Qing and the Select
Committee. He confided to the Select Committee that Jiaqings letter was
dictated by Wisdom, Justice and dignified Manhood in support of those
Moral Rights of Man, of Nations, and of Nature, outraged and insulted.119
In such precarious circumstances, longer delay would probably destroy
the Trade for the Season. The Select Committee accepted his suggestion of
retreat, and a final bilateral agreement was then signed on October 23.
Two days later, British warships cruising near Bogue and Whampoa were
ordered to withdraw from the Pearl River within forty-eight hours. All
other ships of war anchoring at Macao left the peninsula on November
12. At British request, trade was reopened eight days later. In a final report
to his superior in India, Drury described this expedition as the most mysterious, extraordinary and scandalous affair that ever disgraced such an
armament. The same sentiment was echoed by an unsympathetic British
observer in 1832: there never was an expedition more badly conducted, I
believe, than that one of Admiral Drury.120
It is noteworthy that Drury stopped in Vietnam on his way to Macao,
just as Lord Macartney did in 1793. Aside from their China mission, both
of them had a secondary goal of opening Vietnam to British trade. Macartney insisted on achieving it by means of treaties and duly warned against
the risk of invading the country, although his diplomatic effort failed in
the end. The admiral, by contrast, was more aggressive as he tried to barge
in by forcing Gia Long to open up Hanoi for trade. Eleven years earlier the
British navy had engaged in a similar act of aggression by seizing Nguyen
Anhs French-commanded merchant ships. To mend the soured relationship, the British dispatched in 1803 and 1804 two gift-bearing envoys to
the new Nguyen court. Led by Select Committee member John W. Roberts,
both missions offered to provide Gia Long with weapons in return for a
British settlement in Vietnam. But the adamant ruler refused to grant any
special treatment to the EIC. Another objective behind the Roberts missions was to gauge the French influence in Vietnam, which had increased
considerably with the rise of Nguyen power. The British worried that their
246
247
248
249
These failures to some degree helped usher China into its Age of Humiliation and might be reckoned as a major defect of the reformism at the turn
of the nineteenth century.
Nevertheless, Jiaqings reign should not be judged simply by its failure
to prepare the empire for more formidable British intrusions in the Opium
Wars. There were constructive elements to his diplomacy that deviated
from the practices of the previous reign and profoundly affected later
Qing history. Given the Confucian nature of its moral geography and political system, the Jiaqing regime could not abandon the hierarchical tributary framework that had governed Chinas relationship with other political
entities for a thousand years. But, more significant still, it no longer blindly
bore the increasingly unsustainable burden of suzerain responsibility. The
manifest challenges from both tributary neighbors and Western powers
forced Jiaqing to acknowledge the existence of a wider and more dangerous world; his pragmatic and rational response to this challenge laid the
basis for a stronger sense of political equality in Chinese conceptions of
diplomatic relations with other states.
Consequently, the Jiaqing court began to downplay ritualistic displays
of symbolic supremacy while becoming more sensitive to the limits of its
power and to the realpolitik of the empire. It pragmatically modified
China-centered hierarchical diplomacy in order to meet the unprecedented
geopolitical challenges. This pivotal change, as Frederic Wakeman, Jr.,
maintained, precipitated the development of a new sense of imperial diplomacy that largely erased the lines between realistic statecraft and ritualistic
culturalism long before the British imposed the unequal treaty system
upon the Chinese in 1842. The convergence of culturalism and statecraft
signaled the Qings concern for balance between subjective conservatism
and objective progressivism, thereby narrowing the disparity between the
normative principles of its tributary diplomacy and the actual nature of its
interaction with the outside world. This new understanding of foreign relations, furthermore, paved the way for the rise of what Hexiu Quan termed
the two systems under one diplomacy that gained prevalence following
the end of the first Opium War. In the next half century, as the name suggests, the late Qing regime continued its tributary relationship with the remaining vassal states while developing new treaty diplomacy with the Western powers.131
This dual diplomatic system helped the so-called decaying empire to
better cope with the unprecedented set of novel challenges associated with
increasingly complex external relations. As the two Macao incidents indicate, this system enabled the Qing to maintain its sovereignty by forcing
the leading industrializing power to back down. The Jiaqing court also
250
learned to protect its interests by entering into bilateral contractual arrangements with Western nations and, more important, to largely dictate
the terms of such agreements. The German missionary Charles Gutzlaff
commented in 1834 that the two Macao events were the only instance on
record of laws being dictated to the first maritime power in the world by a
feeble government, and implicitly obeyed.132 David C. Kang urges us to
take the tribute system as a set of international rules and ideas similar to
the Westphalian international system that orders our contemporary world.
This begs the question of how the former became increasingly meshed
with the latter from the eighteenth century on. The Qings interactions
with Britain, Portugal, and Vietnam, combined with its diplomatic retreat
and diminishing role in maintaining regional order, provided some preliminary signs that the China-derived Confucian system of tributary hierarchy was transitioning to a polycentric system of more equal interstate
relations, something described in older historiography as a European import. Efforts of this type, albeit limited and piecemeal, eased the shift from
a traditional dynastic empire to a modern nation-state that started well
before the West opened up China. They also contributed to a new strategy by which China might use the treaties to control the foreigners in the
Tongzhi restoration, as Wright puts it.133
The Qing response to the Macao incidents also presented a rather
unique counter-challenge to the seemingly ineluctable rise and unitary development of early modern imperialism. The story told here suggests that
British imperialism should not be deemed a ready-made tool or predetermined formula that relied simply on military prowess. British policy toward
China, aiming to find out how the vast empire might be pressured, was tentative and experimental and could have gone in different directions. Hence I
conceptualize the British advance in China as a trial-and-error process, seeking to find a workable way to combine preset agendas and contingent
opportunities. This unpredictable process was dictated not only by military and economic situations but also by regional power brokering and
practical compromise, which in turn were shaped by a complex congeries
of local incidents, native traditions, and global geopolitics. All these variables defined the spatial and temporal evolution of imperialism as well as
its rhythms and outcomes on the ground.
From the south China piracy to the Taiping rebellion and the Boxer uprising (1900), each major domestic upheaval in the Qing was a green light
for a British imperialist charge forward. Before they could impinge on the
Chinese empire, however, the British had to learn how to do so and had to
wait for the optimal combination of circumstances. The two Macao incidents tell the story of a blundering imperialist power that, confronted by
251
strong Chinese response, was only able to reorient itself by making pragmatic decisions in conformity with past experiences and present challenges.
Both events, alongside Macartneys diplomatic mission and the full-scale
Opium War, marked the key conjunctures in Britains interactive emergence in China.134
Conclusion
his book has sought to examine the key changes during the QianlongJiaqing transition as well as their significance for subsequent Qing history. It makes crisis and reform the central organizing concepts, showing
that this critical juncture can be better understood in terms of the states
multifaceted responses to the White Lotus rebellion and south China piracy.
The two concomitant calamities, rather than a hallmark of inexorable dynastic decline, propelled the Jiaqing regime to reorganize itself through a
series of moderate but decisive reforms in bureaucratic organization and
policy-making. All these changes, taken together, shifted the course of Qing
empire-building from unsupportable expansion to more sustainable retrenchment. It is in this sense that the Jiaqing reign played a positive role in
the great divergence between the high Qing and late Qing. This period of
great change and moderation, in William Rowes words, may also be taken
as the transition era in modern Chinese history.1
The centerpiece of Jiaqings reforms, to briefly recapitulate, was a decisive
turn away from Qianlongs aggressive agenda of imperial control, which
had provoked social protest and overburdened the premodern state. This
pragmatic retreat was not only the most important aspect of the QianlongJiaqing transition but also a defining characteristic of late Qing rule. Such
strategic withdrawal of state power, however, became an increasingly complicated affair because its operating space kept shrinking, due to a dramatic
combination of transnational and transdynastic challenges that included
254
Conclusion
Conclusion
255
256
Conclusion
Conclusion
257
the outer court, depending on a few trusted eunuchs and inner-court advisors to govern the empire.
The early and mid-Qing rulers, in general, played a much more commanding role in the political system than their late Ming counterparts. The
emperors Yongzheng and Qianlong, in particular, were most successful in
tightening the grip on the vast bureaucracy and in creating a highly interventionist state. In his early reign, Qianlong actually reversed many of the
harsh empire-building initiatives undertaken by his imperial father. But
from the 1750s onward the basic tenor of Qianlongs emperorship moved
in a different direction as he gradually strengthened his personal control
through institutional centralization and inner-court hegemony. Such enhancement of monarchical authority, however, was achieved at the expense of outer-court effectiveness and its horizontal coordination. Together with Qianlongs capricious use of power, it eventually backfired and
disrupted a balanced political system, as Heshens notorious regency
clearly suggests. Meanwhile, the hyperactive ruler overextended the states
reach into society by taking on a series of impossible missions at the very
time that the governments ability to regulate local life and offer paternalistic care was diminishing. Such an aggressive approach to sociopolitical
control and frontier-making, unsurprisingly, provoked massive protests
and exacerbated the principal-agent problem during the late eighteenth
century. To save the dynasty from its crisis of political sustainability, Jiaqing took a middle way of assuming a less interventionist posture while not
forgoing constructive imperial initiatives. In recognition of the societal
challenges that outstripped the states capacities, the emperor withdrew
from his fathers unrealistic political commitment by cutting back on government intervention and its Confucian responsibilities. He also tried to
accommodate the claims of bureaucrats and local elites, even at the cost of
restraining his own personalistic power. Jiaqings more balanced efforts in
empire-building suggest that top-down political control was not necessarily at odds with bottom-up societal activism. Instead they could be mutually supportive and compatible.
The process of state-making, as Kenneth Pomeranz suggests, also hinges
on the dual submechanisms of extracting resources and providing services.
To ensure sustainable political development, it is critical to maintain a
general equilibrium between the two interdependent yet somewhat conflicting processes. From the late Ming to late Qing and Republican eras,
central authorities generally increased their squeeze on the taxpayers without improving state services to the local communities, which became a
sure recipe for popular protest and political breakdown. Given the structural restraints it confronted, the Jiaqing regime had little choice but to cut
258
Conclusion
some unsustainable paternalistic services, leaving them to societal initiatives. However, this forced retrenchment in public managerial activities
was not accompanied by inordinate demands on local communities in the
form of resource extraction and political control. Although this strategy
by no means worked equally well in all areas, for example water control in
north China, it did help stabilize the society by stanching the rising tide of
protest at the turn of the nineteenth century. From both a forward and
backward perspective, such diminution in the states involvement in society revitalized the latter, which had long been losing power to the former,
thus ushering in a more compatible relation between the two. The retreat
initiated by Emperor Jiaqing, furthermore, intersected with the post
Opium War crises so as to shift power downward, thus paving the way for
the rise of local autonomy and self-government in the late Qing. All these
changes point up the issues of political sustainability and state-society balance, which, as indispensable conditions for long-term sociopolitical development, continue to matter in different temporal and spatial contexts.
Last but not least, this work hopes to reorient the way we think about
critical events by proposing all-encompassing contentious crisis as a key
concept for understanding Chinese history. This notion helps bridge the
explanatory gap between event and structure by providing a rubric for
converting the scheme of multiple destructive upheavals into an integrative model of constructive development. Such an approach should be especially useful for studying traditional China because as a large, unified
agrarian empire it generally lacked the constant, fierce multistate competition for warmaking and resource extraction that drove its European counterparts.9 Max Weber saw Asian history as lacking the spark that produced dynamic, self-motivated change in the West.10 Yet this book suggests
that Chinese history has been driven by a long train of remarkable crises
that constitute a very volatile, enabling, and transformative aspect of its
seemingly stagnant tradition. Such crises served as a powerful weapon for
reconstructing the Chinese empire, since they formed the axes around which
the state-society relationship revolved and, furthermore, provided a key
catalyst for their intensive interaction. The rise of modern China, by implication, has been inextricably intertwined with some hard-pressed responses
to extraordinary upheavals, as the troubled empire has lurched from crisis
to crisis trying to build a more sustainable state. Hence understanding Chinese modernity, to some degree, means understanding the negotiated construction of the all-encompassing contentious crises as well as their uncanny
impact on the sustainability of Chinas sociopolitical development.
Abbreviations
CSEBFJ
CHSBLJQY
CXLCSL
DHLJQ
HMD
JQGZZPZZ
JQJJCLFZZ
262
JQJJCLFZZ / JBD
JQJJCLFZZ / NM
JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD
JQJJCSSD
JQQJZ
JQSL
JQSNTSH
JQSYD
KJJFSB
QDJPSSXFFL
QDWJSL
QTJ-JQ
QZQWSBLJ
SSSNFTZS
SWJ
SYJL
263
Notes
Introduction
1. All the dates in this book are of the lunar calendar. For a description of the ceremony of abdication and succession, see JQGZZPZZ, 04-01-14-0048-072;
QTJ-JQ, vol. 11, 4755; see also Harold L. Kahn, Monarchy in the Emperors
Eyes: Image and Reality in the Chien-lung Reign (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard
University Press, 1971), 191199.
2. DHLJQ, vol. 1, 23; see also QTJ-JQ, vol. 11, 4755; the Qiansou Yan was first
held by the Kangxi emperor in 1713. The Qianlong emperor held his first Qiansou Yan in 1785, followed by his second in 1796; Alexandra Etheldred Grantham,
A Manchu Monarch: An Interpretation of Chia Ching (London: G. Allen and
Unwin, 1934), 14; William T. Rowe, Chinas Last Empire: the Great Qing (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 2009), 71.
3. This landmark upheaval is often identified as the end point of the high Qing
period, which corresponds to what has been called the flourishing age from
the Kangxi to Qianlong reigns (kang qian shengshi, 16621796). Gong Wensheng, Cong Rong Ou Bi, (Occasional Writings after Joining the Army) in
Jindai zhongguo shiliao congkan (Collected Source Materials for Modern
Chinese History) (Taiwan: Wenhai chubanshe, 1990), part 3, no. 541544,
introduction.
4. It is worth noting that Britains two invasions of Macao represented its most
critical confrontations with China before the first Opium War. SWJ, vol. 8, 354;
QDWJSL, 292.
5. This turbulent period, in particular, coincided with the onset of the Age of
Revolution in Europe (17891848) as E. J. Hobsbawm calls it. Hobsbawm,
266
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
Notes to Pages 25
The Age of Revolution, 1789 to 1848 (New York: Mentor, 1962); Jack Goldstone, Revolution and Rebellion in the Early Modern World (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1991); Kenneth Pomeranz, Their Own Path to
Crisis? Social Change, State-Building, and the Limits of Qing Expansion,
c.17701840, in The Age of Revolutions in Global Context, c.17601840,
ed. David Armitage and Sanjay Subrahmanyam (London: Palgrave Macmillan,
2010), 189208; Ho-Fung Hung uses the term delayed state breakdown to
describe the process of Qing state making during the early nineteenth century. See Protest with Chinese Characteristics: Demonstrations, Riots, and
Petitions in the Mid-Qing Dynasty (New York: Columbia University Press,
2011).
Goldstone challenges this standard interpretation in Revolution and Rebellion, 482.
I borrow this term from Kenneth Pomeranz, The Great Divergence: China,
Europe, and the Making of the Modern World Economy (Princeton: Princeton
University Press, 2000).
Ping-ti Ho, review of John K. Fairbank, ed., The Cambridge History of China
(New York: Cambridge University Press, 1978), vol. 10, Journal of Asian Studies 39(1979): 135.
Recent Western scholarship has begun to look closely at the positive significance of the Jiaqing reign. For instance, Daniel McMahon, Seunghyun Han,
Matthew W. Mosca, and William T. Rowe have sought to recast this period in
a more positive light. Building on their revisionist studies, I hope to present a
systematic reexamination of Jiaqings reign by exploring the politics of social
protest and how it led to a reorientation of the state in the nineteenth century.
William T. Rowe, Introduction: The Significance of the Qianlong-Jiaqing
Transition in Qing History, Late Imperial China 32 (2011): 7488; Matthew
W. Mosca, The Literati Rewriting of China in the Qianlong-Jiaqing Transition, Late Imperial China 32 (2011): 89132; Seunghyun Han, The Punishment of Examination Riots in the Early to Mid-Qing Period, Late Imperial
China 32 (2011): 133165; Cecily McCaffrey, Three Rebellions, Three Resolutions: The Evolution of State / Sect / Society Relations in China, 17741813,
paper presented to the annual meeting of the Association for Asian Studies in
Pennsylvania, March 2010.
Sidney Tarrow, Introduction to Territorial Politics in Industrial Nations, ed.
Sidney Tarrow, Peter J. Katzenstein, and Luigi Graziano (New York: Praeger,
1978), 1; Philip A. Kuhn, Rebellion and Its Enemies in Late Imperial China:
Militarization and Social Structure, 17961864 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard
University Press, 1970).
Charles Tilly, Contentious Politics and Social Change, African Studies 56
(1997): 5165.
There is no book-length study that focuses specifically on the entire White
Lotus rebellion of 1796. An important work is Suzuki Chusei, Shincho chukishi kenkyu (A Historical Study of the Mid-Qing Period)(Toyohashi: Aichi
University Research Institute on International Problems, 1952). Several related
studies are: Richard Chu, An Introductory Study of the White Lotus Sect in
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
267
268
19.
20.
21.
22.
23.
24.
Tilly and Sidney Tarrow, Contentious Politics (Boulder, Colo.: Paradigm, 2007);
Joel Migdal, Atul Kohli, and Vivienne Shue, eds., State Power and Social Forces
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1994); Mark Irving Lichbach and
Alan S. Zuckerman, eds., Comparative Politics: Rationality, Culture, and Structure (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1997).
Sewell interprets such extraordinary events as both dislocations and transformative rearticulations of structures. Sewell, Logics of History, 245; Susan
Mann Jones and Philip Kuhn, Dynastic Decline and the Roots of Rebellion,
in Fairbank, Cambridge History of China, vol. 10, pt. 1, 107; Colin Hay,
Crisis and the Structural Transformation of the State: Interrogating the Process of Change, British Journal of Politics and International Relations 1
(1999):317344.
Fernand Braudel, History and the Social Sciences, in On History, trans.
Sarah Matthews (Chicago: University of Chicago Press, 1980), 2554; similarly, Sewell also classifies the multiple historical time into three categories:
trends, routines, and events.
Sewell, Logics of History, 221246.
Building on the theories of Sahlins and Sewell, more specifically, this book
investigates how the conjuncture of events is related to both the structure of
the conjuncture and the conjuncture of structures, and vice versa. Such an
interactive and open-ended approach provides the basis for a more general
model of historical change that combines slow-to-change, deep-seated structure with fast-moving accidents and kaleidoscopic anecdotes. This methodology, akin to Daniel Littles conjunctural contingent meso-history, helps
lessen the barrier between historians and social scientists by promoting a
middle way between grand theory and excessively particularistic narrative.
Ibid. Daniel Little, Mentalits, Identities, and Practices, www.personal
.umd.umich.edu/~delittle/identity%20mentalite%20practices%20share.htm
(accessed 04/22/13).
Daniel McMahon, Dynastic Decline, Heshen, and the Ideology of the Xianyu
Reforms, Tsing Hua Journal of Chinese Studies 38 (2008): 251; Hung, Protest with Chinese Characteristics; Man-houng Lin emphasizes the significance
of the silver-copper coin crisis triggered by the global decrease in silver from
1808 to 1856. See China Upside Down: Currency, Society, and Ideology,
18081856 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 2006), 2, 108109.
Rowe, Chinas Last Empire, 150.
269
3. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 394, 138; Wen-hsiung Hsu, The Triads and Their Ideology up to the Early Nineteenth Century: A Brief History, in Heterodoxy in
Late Imperial China, ed. K. C. Liu and Richard Shek (Honolulu: University of
Hawaii Press, 2004), 329; David Ownby, Brotherhoods and Secret Societies in
Early and Mid-Qing China (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1996), 5;
Tuan-Hwee Sng, Size and Agency Problems in Early Modern China and Japan (Ph.D. diss., Northwestern University, 2011), 59.
4. JQJJCLFZZ, May 16, 1809, 03-1717-058; William T. Rowe, Chinas Last
Empire: The Great Qing (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press,
2009), 78.
5. Alexander Woodside, The Chien-Lung Reign, in The Cambridge History of
China, vol. 9, The Ching Empire to 1800, pt. 1, ed. Willard J. Peterson (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2002), 269, 330; Ownby, Brotherhoods,
5, 26, 108; Hsu, Triads and Their Ideology, 327, 346; Antony, Piracy and
the Shadow Economy in the South China Sea, 17801810, in Elusive Pirates,
Pervasive Smugglers: Violence and Clandestine Trade in the Greater China
Seas, ed. Antony (Hong Kong: Hong Kong University Press, 2010), 101; HoFung Hung, Protest with Chinese Characteristics: Demonstrations, Riots, and
Petitions in the Mid-Qing Dynasty (New York: Columbia University Press,
2011), 123.
6. Rongzhen Wu, Qianjia miaomin qiyi shigao (Historical Documents of the
Miao Rebellions in the Qianlong and Jiaqing Reigns of the Qing Dynasty)
(Guiyang: Guizhou renmin chubanshe, 1985), 3.
7. QTJ-JQ, vols. 11, 4728; see also Donald Sutton, Ethnic Revolt in the Qing
Empire: The Miao Uprising of 17951797 Reexamined, Asia Major 17
(2005): 115.
8. Sutton, Ethnic Revolt, 109110; Wu, Qianjia miaomin qiyi shigao, 3; Suzuki Chusei, Shincho chukishi kenkyu (A Historical Study of the Mid-Qing
Period)(Toyohashi: Aichi University Research Institute on International Problems, 1952), 142143.
9. Yingcong Dai, The Sichuan Frontier and Tibet: Imperial Strategy in the Early
Qing (Seattle: University of Washington Press, 2009), 224. Emboldened by the
initial success of her ethnic brothers, the Guizhou sorceress Wang Acong
launched a second Miao insurrection against government persecution and
Han exploitation. Hailing from the Miao tribe in Nanlong prefecture, Wang
was a charismatic local leader who had been worshiped as Goddess Nang
(Nangxian). This rebellion started on January 26, 1797, and finally was suppressed eight months later. Despite its short duration and narrow range, Wang
Acongs rebellion further taxed the states resources and lent an indirect support to the rising White Lotus rebels. See Shangying Li, Jiaqing er nian de
Wang Nangxian qiyi (The Wang Nangxian Rebellion in the Second Year of
the Jiaqing Reign), Qingshi yanjiu (Study in History of the Qing Dynasty) 2
(1993): 8689.
10. Seth L. Stewart, Qianlong, the Taipings, and Change: The Decline of the Qing
Empire and the Dynastic System of Governance (Ph.D. diss., University of
Louisville, 2008), 49; Xiang Gao, Cong chiying baotai dao gaoya tongzhi:
270
11.
12.
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
22.
271
23. Ho, Studies on the Population of China, 109, 145148; Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 109110.
24. Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 110; Philip Kuhn, Origins of the Modern
Chinese State (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2002), 67.
25. Anne Osborne, The Local Politics of Land Reclamation in the Lower Yangzi
Highlands, Late Imperial China 15 (1994): 110; Robert B. Marks, Tigers,
Rice, Silk, and Silt: Environment and Economy in Late Imperial South China
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1998); Marks, China: Its Environment and History (Lanham, Md.: Rowman and Littlefield, 2012), 222.
26. Mark Elvin, The Environmental Legacy of Imperial China, China Quarterly
156 (1998): 738.
27. Kenneth Pomeranz, The Great Divergence: China, Europe, and the Making of
the Modern World Economy (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2000).
28. Kuhn, Origins of the Modern Chinese State, 6.
29. Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 109; see also Anne Osborne, Highlands
and Lowlands: Economic and Ecological Interactions in the Lower Yangzi
Region under the Qing, in Sediments of Time: Environment and Society in
Chinese History, ed. Mark Elvin and Tsui-jung Liu (Cambridge: Cambridge
University Press, 1998), 203.
30. Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 132.
31. Bradly Reed, Talons and Teeth: County Clerks and Runners in the Qing Dynasty (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2000); Frederic Wakeman, Jr., The
Evolution of Local Control in Late Imperial China, in Conflict and Control in
Late Imperial China, ed. Frederic Wakeman, Jr., and Carolyn Grant (Berkeley:
University of California Press, 1975), 18; JQJJCSSD, December 16 and 24, 1803,
321; see also JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD, December 16, 20, 24, and 26, 1803, hereafter
JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD.
32. Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 108.
33. Joseph Fletcher, Ching Inner Asia c. 1800, in Fairbank, The Cambridge History of China, vol. 10, Late Ching, 18001911, pt. 1, 35; Nicola Di Cosmo,
Qing Colonial Administration in Inner Asia, International History Review
20 (1998): 288.
34. Owen Lattimore, The Frontier in History, Studies in Frontier History: Collected Papers, 19281958 (London: Oxford University Press, 1962), 487.
35. SWJ, vol. 9, 375.
36. This ill-conceived campaign, as R. Kent Guy puts it, represented a critical
moment of transition between the military endeavors associated with Fuheng
[chief Grand Council] and the much more civilian concerns of Fuhengs successor Liu Tongxun. Guy, Qing Governors and Their Provinces: The Evolution of Territorial Administration in China, 16441796 (Seattle: University of
Washington Press, 2010), 135; Xiang Gao argues that Qianlongs change of
attitude signaled and facilitated the Qings transition from an expanding phase
to a consolidating one. See Gao, Cong chiying baotai, 9, 11.
37. Joel S. Migdal, State in Society: Studying How State and Societies Transform
and Constitute One Another (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2001),
1617, 97.
272
38. Ping-ti Ho, The Ladder of Success in Imperial China: Aspects of Social Mobility, 13681911 (New York: Columbia University Press, 1964); Woodside,
Chien-Lung Reign, 300.
39. Shmuel Noah Eisenstadt, The Political Systems of Empires (London and New
York: Free Press of Glencoe, 1963), 27; Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline,
110; C. K. Yang, Some Preliminary Statistical Patterns of Mass Actions in
Nineteenth Century China, in Wakeman and Grant, Conflict and Control in
Late Imperial China, 200.
40. Woodside, Chien-Lung Reign, 238; Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline,
110114.
41. Rowe, Chinas Last Empire, 154; Jung, Chien-Lung Emperors Suppression,
66; corrupt officials included Wang Ganwang, Chen Huizhu, Wulana, and
Pulin. See Huang Hongshou, Qingshi jishi benmo (The Records of Qing History from Beginning to End) (Shanghai: Shanghai shudian, 1986), vol. 34.
42. Alexandra Etheldred Grantham, A Manchu Monarch: An Interpretation of
Chia Ching (London: G. Allen and Unwin, 1934), 23, cited in Nancy E.
Park, Corruption in Eighteenth-Century China, Journal of Asian Studies
56 (1997): 968.
43. Susan Mann Jones, Hung Liang-Chi (17461809): The Perception and Articulation of Political Problems in Late Eighteenth Century China (Ph.D.
diss., Stanford University, 1972), 167174; Jung, Chien-Lung Emperors
Suppression, 53. Hansheng Quan argues that such inflationary effect also resulted from what he calls the Chinese price revolution in the eighteenth
century. See Quan, Mingqing jian meizhou baiyin de shuru zhongguo (The
Inflow of American Silver to China during the Ming and Qing Dynasties), in
Quan, Zhongguo jingjishi luncong (Essays on Chinese Economic History)
(Taipei: Hedao chubanshe, 1996): 435450.
44. Yuri Pines, The Everlasting Empire: The Political Culture of Ancient China
and Its Imperial Legacy (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 2012), 120;
Madeleine Zelin, The Magistrates Tael: Rationalizing Fiscal Reform in Eighteenth Century Ching China (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1984),
299.
45. Jeou Yi Aileen Yang, The Muddle of Salt: The State and Merchants in Late
Imperial China, 16441911 (Ph.D. diss., Harvard University, 1996), 184; The
yamen runners and clerks had to sustain themselves with the customary fees
collected in the course of their administrative chores. Reed, Talons and Teeth,
249252; Prasenjit Duara, Culture, Power, and the State: Rural North China,
19001942 (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1988); Kenneth Pomeranz,
The Making of a Hinterland: State, Society, and Economy in Inland North
China, 18531937 (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1993), 189.
46. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 396, 146; Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 113.
47. Hung, Protest with Chinese Characteristics, 102103; under the dual pressure
from the top-down (state) and the bottom-up (society), ironically, many yamen
clerks and runners joined the White Lotus sects in the late Qianlong reign.
Thanks to their official and social network of communication, these illicit
bureaucrats contributed greatly to the wide spread of the sectarian teachings
48.
49.
50.
51.
52.
273
in western and northern Hubei. Some former yamen personnel, like Wang Lun,
Qi Lin, Yang Qiyuan, Xiong Daocheng, Xu Tiande, and Lin Qing, even became major leaders in the White Lotus uprisings of the late eighteenth and
early nineteenth centuries. See Tianxiang Jiang, Zhaoya yu panni: xuli yu
qing zhongqi bailianjiao qiyiyi qianjia zhi ji dangyang jiaotuan wei zhongxin
(Talons, Teeth, and Rebels: Yamen Personnel and the White Lotus Rebellion in
mid-Qingwith a focus on the Dangyang Congregation during the QianlongJiaqing Transition), Lishi jiaoxue wenti (Issues in History Teaching) 3 (2007):
4549; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 1, 73, 80, 82n.
QZQWSBLJ, vol. 5, 226; XTZL, vol. 10, 18; JQQJZ, January 20, 1799, 60;
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 366, 382.
Jones, Hung Liang-Chi, 170.
Jung, Chien-Lung Emperors Suppression, 34, 86; Michael G. Chang, A
Court on Horseback: Imperial Touring and the Construction of Qing Rule,
16801785 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Asia Center, 2007), 428.
Ibid., 138; Huang, Autocracy at Work, 16; Hung, Protest with Chinese Characteristics, 131133.
Mark C. Elliott, Emperor Qianlong: Son of Heaven, Man of the World (New
York: Longman, 2009), 164; Jung, Chien-Lung Emperors Suppression, 5, 98.
274
9.
10.
11.
12.
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
and Social Forces, ed. Joel Migdal, Atul Kohli, and Vivienne Shue (Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 1994), 207230.
It is worth noting that these borderlands were full of multiple communities
and social groups that often fought each other at least as much as they fought
the state.
Perdue, China Marches West, 552; James A. Millward, New Perspective on
the Qing Frontier, in Remapping China: Fissures in Historical Terrain, ed.
Gail Hershatter et al. (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1996).
G. William Skinner, Cities and the Hierarchy of Local Systems, in The City
in Late Imperial China, ed. G. William Skinner (Stanford: Stanford University
Press, 1977), 275352.
Jerry H. Bentley, Sea and Ocean Basins as Frameworks of Historical Analysis, Geographical Review 89 (1999): 215224; R. Keith Schoppa, Contours
of Revolutionary Change in a Chinese County, 19001950, in TwentiethCentury China: New Approaches, ed. Jeffery N. Wasserstrom (London: Rutledge, 2003), 134.
QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 344.
Susan Mann Jones and Philip Kuhn, Dynastic Decline and the Roots of Rebellion,, in The Cambridge History of China, vol. 10, pt. 1, ed. John K. Fairbank
(New York: Cambridge University Press, 1978), 136; Daniel Overmyer, Folk
Buddhist Religion (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1976); see
also QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 344; Susan Naquin, The Transmission of White
Lotus Sectarianism in Late Imperial China, in Popular Culture in Late Imperial China, ed. David Johnson, Andrew Nathan, and Evelyn Rawski (Berkeley:
University of California Press, 1985), 257.
Richard Shek, The Alternative Moral Universe of Religious Dissenters in
Ming-Qing China, in Religion and the Early Modern State: Views from
China, Russia, and the West, ed. James D. Tracy and Marguerite Ragnow
(New York: Cambridge University Press, 2004), 1618.
Richard Chu, An Introductory Study of the White Lotus Sect in Chinese History: With Special Reference to Peasant Movements (Ph.D. diss., Columbia
University, 1967), 8990; Overmyer, Folk Buddhist Religion, 48.
Overmyer, Folk Buddhist Religion, 48; Susan Naquin, Connections between
Rebellions: Sect Family Networks in Qing China, Modern China 8 (1982):
337; Shek, Alternative Moral Universe, 18; Hok-lam Chan, The White
LotusMaitreya Doctrine and Popular Uprisings in Ming and Ching China,
Sinologica 10 (1969): 216218.
Overmyer, Folk Buddhist Religion, 83; Robert Weller, Sectarian Religion and
Political Action in China, Modern China 8 (1982): 477478.
Weller, Sectarian Religion, 478; imperial edict of May 22, 1800, JQSYD, vol.
5, 267.
Richard Shek and Tetsuro Noguchi, Eternal Mother Religion: Its History and
Ethics, in Heterodoxy in Late Imperial China, ed. K. C. Liu and Richard Shek
(Honolulu: University of Hawaii Press, 2004), 267.
This perspective was inspired by Akhil Guptas research on how the discourse
of corruption shaped the ethnography of the state in contemporary India.
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
28.
29.
30.
31.
32.
33.
275
Gupta, Blurred Boundaries: The Discourse of Corruption, the Culture of Politics, and the Imagined State, American Ethnologist 22 (1995): 375402.
Susan Naquin, Millenarian Rebellion in China: The Eight Trigrams Uprising
of 1813 (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1976), 8; Shek and Noguchi,
Eternal Mother Religion, 241; Stevan Harrell and Elizabeth J. Perry, Syncretic Sects in Chinese Society: An Introduction, Modern China 8(1982):
290291.
Richard von Glahn, The Sinister Way: The Divine and the Demonic in Chinese
Religious Culture (Berkeley: University of California Press, 2004); Shek and
Noguchi, Eternal Mother Religion, 269; Shek, Alternative Moral Universe,
41, 49.
See Lebaos memorial of 1795, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 1, 25; QDJPSSXFFL, vol.
395, 189.
Richard Shek, Ethics and Polity: The Heterodoxy of Buddhism, Maitreyanism, and the Early White Lotus, in Liu and Shek, Heterodoxy in Late Imperial China, 329; Suzuki Chusei, Shincho chukishi kenkyu (A Historical Study
of the Mid-Qing Period) (Toyohashi: Aichi University Research Institute on
International Problems, 1952), 104; memorial of Nayancheng, KJJFSB, 187,
241; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 1, 25; Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 137.
Naquin, Millenarian Rebellion, 8; Chu, An Introductory Study of the White
Lotus Sect.
Susan Naquin, Introduction to Shantung Rebellion: The Wang Lun Uprising
of 1774 (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1981).
Ibid.
Arthur Wolf, Gods, Ghosts, and Ancestors, in Studies in Chinese Society, ed.
Arthur Wolf (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1978), 135, 175.
James Watson, Standardizing the Gods: The Promotion of Tien Hou (Empress
of Heaven) along the South China Coast, 9601960, in Johnson et al., Popular
Culture in Late Imperial China, 292324; Prasenjit Duara, Superscribing
Symbols: The Myth of Guandi, Chinese God of War, Journal of Asian Studies
47 (1988): 778795; Qitao Guo, Exorcism and Money: The Symbolic World
of the Five-Fury Spirits in Late Imperial China (Berkeley: Institute of East
Asian Studies, 2003); Ritual Opera and Mercantile Lineage: The Confucian
Transformation of Popular Culture in Late Imperial Huizhou (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2005).
Weller, Sectarian Religion, 481; B. J. ter Haar, The White Lotus Teachings in
Chinese Religious History (Honolulu: University of Hawaii Press, 1999), 243;
Steven P. Sangren, Female Gender in Chinese Religious Symbols: Kuan Yin,
Ma Tsu, and the Eternal Mother, Signs 9 (1983): 25.
Naquin, Transmission of White Lotus Sectarianism, 257.
K. C. Liu, Religion and Politics in the White Lotus Rebellion of 1796 in
Hubei, in Liu and Shek, Heterodoxy in Late Imperial China, 293; Yingcong
Dai, The Sichuan Frontier and Tibet: Imperial Strategy in the Early Qing
(Seattle: University of Washington Press, 2009), 223; Jianmin Li, Qing jiaqing
yuannian chuanchu bailian jiao qishi yuanyin de tiantao (On the Origins of
the White Lotus Rebellion in Sichuan and Hubei in the First Year of the Jiaqing
276
34.
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
Reign), Zhongyang yanjiuyuan jindaishi yanjiusuo jikan (Bulletin of the Institute of Modern History, Academica Sinica) 22 (1993): 368369.
JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD, September 25, 1804; QTJ-JQ, vol. 11, 4716; KJJFSB,
97; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 395, 201
Li, Qing jiaqing yuannian, 369.
Ibid., 393; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 1, 57; vol. 4, 164, 187, 300, 306, 313;
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 154, 155, 164.
QZQWSBLJ, vol. 4, 163, 237; vol. 1, 58, 71; Haicheng Gu, Chuan shan chu
bailian jiaoluan shimo (An Overall Account of the Uprisings by the White Lotus Sects in the Provinces of Sichuan, Shaanxi, and Hubei)(Taipei: Landeng
wenhua shiye gufen youxian gongsi, 1976), 35; Sandip Hazareesingh, Interconnected Synchronicities: The Production of Bombay and Glasgow as Modern Global Ports c. 18501880, Journal of Global History 4 (2009): 731;
Cecily Miriam McCaffrey, Living through Rebellion: A Local History of the
White Lotus Uprising in Hubei, China (Ph.D. diss., University of California,
San Diego, 2003), 8489, 186.
Skinner, Cities and the Hierarchy, 282.
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 396, 166.
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 137; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 4, 37. As for the difference
between wet-rice cultivation and dry-land farming, see Robert B. Marks, Tigers, Rice, Silk, and Silt: Environment and Economy in Late Imperial South
China (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1998), 103105; Schoppa,
Contours of Revolutionary Change, 133.
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 392, 324; vol. 397, 108; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 1, 74, 108;
JQJJCLFZZ, February 24, 1801, 03-1481-031, Louis Richard, Comprehensive Geography of the Chinese Empire and Dependencies (Shanghai: Tsewei
Press, 1908), 123130; Richard White, The Middle Ground: Indians, Empires,
and Republics in the Great Lakes Region, 16501815 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1991).
Shaobin Li, Qingdai zhongqi chuanshanchu diqu liudong renkou yu
chuanshanchu jiaoluan (Migrants and the White Lotus Rebellion in Sichuan, Shaanxi, and Hubei Provinces in the Mid-Qing Dynasty) (M.A. thesis,
Taiwan Normal University, 1999), 115; Blaine Gaustad, Prophets and Pretenders: Inter-sect Rivalry in Qianlong China, Late Imperial China 21
(2000): 1217.
Tianxiang Jiang, Qing Qianjia zhi ji bailian jiao xiangyang jiaotuan de dili
fenbu he kongjian jiegou (The Geographical Distribution and Spatial Organization of the Xiangyang Congregation of the White Lotus Religion during
the Qianlong-Jiaqing Transition) Zongjiao xue yanjiu (Religious Studies) 3
(2008): 154163; McCaffrey, Living through Rebellion, 138.
SWJ, vol. 9, 376; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 236, vol. 4, 1; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 1, 8;
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 54.
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 166, 185; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 228, 230.
Liu, Religion and Politics, 287; memorial of Nayancheng, KJJFSB, in CHSBLJQY, 184; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 337, vol. 5, 8, 105.
Naquin, Millenarian Rebellion, 121.
277
48. Memorial of Nayancheng, KJJFSB, 21; see also QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 173;
JQJJCLFZZ, July 19, 1796, 03-1651-012.
49. Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 143.
50. A key strategy of the White Lotus rebels was looting and coercing (guoxie).
They forced good people to follow them by burning their villages and controlling all the food. To further secure their commitment and prevent their secession, the rebels usually shaved the coerced populaces hair and tattooed the
White Lotus symbol on their face. Nie Renjies Confession, QZQWSBLJ,
vol.5, 3, 7, 169; memorial of Jingan, QZQWSBLJ, vol.2, 257.
51. McCaffrey, Living through Rebellion; Liu, Religion and Politics.
52. Millward, New Perspective, 113129; Daniel McMahon, The Essentials
of a Qing Frontier: Yan Ruyis Conditions and Customs in the Mountains,
Monumenta Serica 51 (2003): 309319; William T. Rowe, Crimson Rain: Seven
Centuries of Violence in a Chinese County (Stanford: Stanford University
Press, 2007); Stephen C. Averill, Revolution in the Highlands: Chinas Jinggangshan Base Area (Lanham, Md.: Rowman and Littlefield, 2006); Anne Osborne,
The Local Politics of Land Reclamation in the Lower Yangzi Highlands,
Late Imperial China 15 (1994): 110.
53. Kevin Archer, Regions as Social Organisms: The Lamarckian Characteristics of
Vidal de la Blaches Regional Geography, Annals of the Association of American Geographers 83 (1993): 499503; E. A. Wrigley, Change in the Philosophy
of Geography, in Frontiers in Geographical Teaching, ed. R. J. Chorley and
P. Haggett (London: Methuen, 1965), 320.
54. SSSNFTZS, 18.
55. Liang Zhongxiao, Hanshui wenhuadai de xingcheng xulun (On the Formation of the Han River Cultural Belt), Hanzhong shifan daxue xuebao (Journal
of the Hanzhong Normal University) 80 (2004): 36.
56. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1699-060; Hongwei Gui, Qingdai shannan shengtai huanjing bianqian de chengyin tanxi (Interpreting the Reasons for Change in the
Ecological Environment of Southern Shaanxi in the Qing Dynasty) Qingshi
yanjiu (Study in History of the Qing Dynasty) 1 (2005): 55.
57. Eduard B. Vermeer, Population and Ecology along the Frontier in Qing
China, in Sediments of Time: Environment and Society in Chinese History,
ed. Mark Elvin and Tsui-jung Liu (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press,
1998), 254.
58. SWJ, vol. 9, 433; Tanmin Jia et al., Qingba shanqu de lishi bianqian yu shengtai chongjian (The Historical Transformation and Ecological Reconstruction
of the Qinba Highlands), Xibei nonglin keji daxue xuebao (Journal of the
Northwest Agriculture and Forestry University) 2 (2002): 12; QDJPSSXFFL,
vol. 392, 478.
59. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1699-060; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 392, 586; CSEBFJ, 377.
60. William Skinner, Regional Urbanization in Nineteenth-Century China, in
Skinner, City in Late Imperial China, 218.
61. Chang Woei Ong, Men of Letters within the Passes: Guanzhong Literati in
Chinese History, 9071911 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Asia Center, 2008), 7; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 392, 477, 500; vol. 393, 475.
278
62. Tsui-jung Liu, Trade on the Han River and Its Impact on Economic Development, c. 18001911 (Taipei: Institute of Economics, 1980), 2.
63. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 395, 644; another official, Gong Wensheng, shared the
same view; see Gong Wensheng, Cong Rong Ou Bi, (Occasional Writings
after Joining the Army) in Jindai zhongguo shiliao congkan (Collected Source
Materials for Modern Chinese History)(Taiwan: Wenhai chubanshe, 1990),
introduction; SSSNFTZS, 14.
64. The most important pathway was shudao (plank roads); JQJJCLFZZ,
03-1699-060, 03-2844-038; SSSNFTZS, 22.
65. Zhongxiao Liang, Lishi shiqi qingba shanqu ziran huanjing de bianqian
(The Historical Transformation of the Natural Environment in the Qinba
Highlands), Zhongguo lishi dili luncong (Collections of Essays on Chinese
Historical Geography) 17(2002): 3947; Ansheng Ming, Hanshui wenhuashi shang bada wenhua zhenghe xianxiang tanjiu (On the Eight Phenomena of Cultural Integration in the Han River History), Yunyang shifan
gaodeng zhuanke xuexiao xuebao (Journal of the Teachers College of Yunyang) 27 (2007): 18.
66. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 137; vol. 394, 433, 528; vol. 396, 467; SWJ, vol. 10,
451; SSSNFTZS, 36.
67. Tuan-Hwee Sng, Size and Agency Problems in Early Modern China and Japan (Ph.D. diss., Northwestern University, 2011), 4.
68. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 394, 432; see also QZQWSBLJ, vol. 4, 38; SSSNFTZS, 27;
JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1699-060; Eduard B. Vermeer, The Mountain Frontier in
Late Imperial China: Economic and Social Developments in the Dabashan,
Toung Pao (International Journal of Chinese Studies) 77 (1991): 317.
69. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 524, 533, vol. 392, 586; vol. 393, 129, 236; vol. 398,
279; SWJ, vol. 9, 433, 440; DHLJQ, vol. 2, 79; see also QZQWSBLJ, vol. 4,
208.
70. One li equals 0.31 miles. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 475; JQJJCLFZZ, November 1799, 03-1686-040.
71. CSEBFJ, 412; see also QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 392, 135.
72. Memorial of Nayancheng, KJJFSB, in CHSBLJQY, 119; JQJJCLFZZ,
03-2502-014; CSEBFJ, 4.
73. See Chiang Kai-shek, preface to CSEBFJ.
74. QZQWSBLJ, vol. 5, 150; Gong, Cong Rong Ou Bi, 520; a similar description of this military strategy can be seen in QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 392, 56.
75. JQQJZ; imperial edict of November 3, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 434; DHLJQ, vol.
2, 74; see also QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 394, 281; vol. 395, 511.
76. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 190; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 4, 38; Liang, Lishi shiqi, 44;
SSSNFTZS, 14, 23; JQJJCLFZZ, 03-2059-038; JQGZZPZZ, 04-01-04-0023-001;
Vermeer, Mountain Frontier, 301.
77. Liu, Trade on the Han River, 137; Bi Yuan, memorial in the Xing-an Prefecture
gazetteer, in Vermeer, Mountain Frontier, 311; JQJJCLFZZ, 03-2844-038,
03-2059-038.
78. JQGZZPZZ, 04-01-02-0066-019; William T. Rowe, Social Stability and Social Change, in The Cambridge History of China, vol. 9, The Ching Empire
79.
80.
81.
82.
83.
84.
85.
86.
87.
88.
89.
90.
91.
92.
93.
94.
95.
279
280
281
117. QZQWSBLJ, vol. 5, 8; memorial of Nayancheng, KJJFSB, 249; Shek, Alternative Moral Universe, 49.
118. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 261; see also QZQWSBLJ, vol. 1, 101.
119. Suzuki, Shincho chukishi kenkyu, 123124.
120. Naquin, Transmission of White Lotus Sectarianism, 281; QZQWSBLJ, vol.
5, 24.
121. Blaine Gaustad and K. C. Liu examine the intricate network of relationship
that existed among separate but doctrinally similar sects, which facilitated
massive mobilization of sectarian forces in times of crisis. See Blaine Gaustad,
Religious Sectarianism and the State in Mid Qing China: Background to the
White Lotus Uprising of 17961804 (Ph.D. diss., University of California,
Berkeley, 1994); Liu, Religion and Politics.
122. Ye Shizhuo, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 5, 275.
123. QZQWSBLJ, vol. 5, 275; Daniel McMahon, Restoring the Garden: Yan Ruyi
and the Civilizing of Chinas Internal Frontiers, 17951805 (Ph.D. diss., University of California, Davis, 1999), 197; Averill, Revolution in the Highlands, 11.
124. Wong, China Transformed, 102.
125. David Easton, The Political System (New York: Knopf, 1953), 129134.
126. Wong, China Transformed, 102.
127. Prasenjit Duara, Culture, Power, and the State: Rural North China, 1900
1942 (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1988).
128. CSEBFJ, Introduction.
129. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 475; vol. 394, 627; SSSNFTZS, 23;
130. James Scott, Weapons of the Weak: Everyday Forms of Peasant Resistance
(New Haven: Yale University Press, 1985), 234.
131. Little, Local Politics.
132. George Edson Dutton, The Tay Son Uprising: Society and Rebellion in
Eighteenth-Century Vietnam (Honolulu: University of Hawaii Press, 2006),
153; Joel Migdal, The State in Society: An Approach to Struggles for Domination, in Migdal et al., State Power and Social Forces, 22.
133. Gupta, Blurred Boundaries, 394.
134. Mark I. Lichbach, Social Theory and Comparative Politics, in Comparative
Politics: Rationality, Culture, and Structure, ed. Mark Irving Lichbach and
Alan S. Zuckerman (Cambridge University Press, 1997), 242.
135. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 181. Noriko Kamachi, Feudalism or Absolute
Monarchism: Japanese Discourse on the Nature of State and Society in Late
Imperial China, Modern China 16 (1990): 330.
282
the Sea: The World of Pirates and Seafarers in Late Imperial South China
(Berkeley: Institute of East Asian Studies, 2003), 38.
3. JQSL, imperial edict of October 1801, vol. 89, 176179; see also DHLJQ,
vol. 4, 140; JQJJCLFZZ, March 21, 1796, 03-1700-003, 03-1700-078, April
10, 1797, 03-1708-010, 03-1686-058.
4. Hosea Ballou Morse, The Chronicles of the East India Company Trading to
China 16351834 (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1926), vol. 2, 395; SWJ,
vol. 8, 354.
5. Roland Higgins, Piracy and Coastal Defense in the Ming Period, Governmental Responses to Coastal Disturbances, 152349 (Ph.D. diss., University
of Minnesota, 1981), 46; Robert Antony, Sea Bandits of the Canton Delta,
17801839, International Journal of Maritime History 17 (December
2005): 2; Thomas C. S. Chang, Tsai Chien, the Pirate Who Dominates the
Sea: A Study of Coastal Piracy in China, 17951810 (Ph.D. diss., University
of Arizona, 1983), 1223.
6. John L. Anderson, Piracy and World History: An Economic Perspective on
Maritime Predation, in Bandits at Sea: A Pirates Reader, ed. C. R. Pennell
(New York: New York University Press, 2001), 88.
7. Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 80; Dian H. Murray, Living and
Working Conditions in Chinese Pirate Communities, 17501850, in Pirates
and Privateers: New Perspectives on the War on Trade in the Eighteenth and
Nineteenth Centuries, ed. David J. Starkey et al. (Exeter: University of Exeter
Press, 1997), 61.
8. Anne Protin-Dumon, The Pirate and the Emperor: Power and Law on the
Seas, 14501850, in The Political Economy of Merchant Empires, ed. James
D. Tracy (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1991), 225; Janice E.
Thomson, Mercenaries, Pirates, and Sovereigns: State-Building and Extraterritorial Violence in Early Modern Europe (Princeton: Princeton University
Press, 1994), 152; Robert C. Ritchie, Government Measures against Piracy
and Privateering in the Atlantic Area, 17501850, in Starkey et al., Pirates
and Privateers, 14.
9. Thomson, Mercenaries, 21, 54; Tonio Andrade, The Companys Chinese Pirates: How the Dutch East India Company Tried to Lead a Coalition of Pirates
to War against China, 16211662, Journal of World History 15(2004): 416.
10. Antony, Like Froth, 165.
11. Protin-Dumon, Pirate and the Emperor, 225.
12. Murray, Living and Working Conditions, 47; Protin-Dumon, Pirate and
the Emperor, 197.
13. The Dutch East Indies Company is also called VOC, an abbreviation for
Verenigde Oostindische Compagnie. The Dutch occupied the Taiwan Island
in 1624, which became an important part of their international commercial
empire and an entrept in East Asia.
14. Within the areas of the province demarcated for evacuation, Qing soldiers
plundered and razed houses, laid waste to farmland, and sacked and burned
down entire towns and cities. See Ting Tsz Kao, The Chinese Frontiers (Aurora: Chinese Scholarly, 1980), 4.
283
15. Mio Kishimoto-Nakayama, The Kangxi Depression and Early Qing Local
Market, Late Imperial China 10 (1984): 227256.
16. Antony, Like Froth, 21.
17. Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast.
18. Yuan Yonglun, Jing Haifen Ji (Record of the Pacification of the Pirates). This
book was published in 1830; one year later it was translated and included in
the English work by Charles Fried Neumann, The Pirates Who Infested the
China Sea, from 18071810 (London: J. L. Cox, 1831), 5; Zhongxun Zhang,
Qing jiaqing nian jian minzhe haidao zuzhi yanjiu, (Studies on the Piracy
Organizations of Fujian and Zhejiang Provinces during the Jiaqing Reign of
the Qing Dynasty) in Zhongguo haiyang fazhan shi lunwen ji (Studies on the
History of Chinas Maritime Development) (Taipei: Academia Sinica, 1990),
vol. 2, 164166.
19. Richard Glasspoole, A Few Remarks on the Origins, Progress, Manners, and
Customs of the Ladrones, in Pirates Who Infested the China Sea, 127; see
also QTJ-JQ, vol. 12, 5033.
20. Imperial edicts of June 24, 1804 and October 26, 1807, JQSYD, vol. 9, 241;
vol. 12, 499; JQJJCLFZZ, November 29, 1809, 03-1692-081; see also Antony,
Sea Bandits of the Canton Delta, 28; Charles Gutzlaff, A Sketch of Chinese
History, Ancient and Modern: Comprising a Retrospect of the Foreign Intercourse and Trade with China (New York: John P. Haven, 1834), 2021.
21. Memorial of the Fujian governor Li Diantu, November 16, 1804, JQSYD, vol.
9, 515; see also Gutzlaff, Sketch of Chinese History, 20; Antony, Like Froth,
118; Murray, Living and Working Conditions, 49. A similar description can
be found in Demetrius Charles Boulger, History of China (London, W. H. Allen & co., 18811884), vol. 3, 29; Dian Murray, Piracy and Chinas Maritime
Transition, 17501850, in Maritime China in Transition, 17501850, ed.
Wang Gungwu and Ng Chin-keong (Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz Verlag, 2004),
54; Zhang, Qing jiaqing nian jian, 178.
22. Murray, Piracy and Chinas Maritime Transition, 53; imperial edict of
November 9, 1805, JQSYD, vol. 10, 690.
23. Morse, Chronicles of the East India Company, vol. 3, 8; E. H. Nolan, The Illustrated History of the British Empire in India and the East (London: Virtue,
1858), vol. 2, 490; QDWJSL, 292.
24. Morse, Chronicles of the East India Company, vol. 3, 8; see also Anderson,
Piracy and World History, 196197.
25. Jesse Olney, The Family Book of History (Philadelphia: Durrie and Peck,
1839), 113; Boulger, History of China, vol. 3, 33; Murray, Piracy and Chinas
Maritime Transition, 54; Antony, Sea Bandits of the Canton Delta, 23.
26. JQJJCLFZZ / NM, May 1, 1809, 2263; JQJJCLFZZ, unknown date,
03-2173-059
27. Anderson, Piracy and World History, 88, 185; Antony, Like Froth, 13.
28. Antony, Sea Bandits of the Canton Delta, 2728.
29. Yuan, Jing Haifen Ji, 15; Antony, Sea Bandits of the Canton Delta, 28; Robert Antony, Piracy and the Shadow Economy in the South China Sea, 1780
1810, in Elusive Pirates, Pervasive Smugglers: Violence and Clandestine Trade
284
30.
31.
32.
33.
34.
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
in the Greater China Seas, ed. Antony (Hong Kong: Hong Kong University
Press, 2010), 99.
SWJ, vol. 8, 359; imperial edict of August 20, 1804, JQSYD, vol. 9, 391.
Glasspoole, Few Remarks, 127; see also QTJ-JQ, vol. 12, 5137; see also
Boulger, History of China, vol. 3, 32; Andrew Ljungstedt, An Historical Sketch
of the Portuguese Settlements in China (Boston: James Munroe & Co., 1835),
114; Yuan, Jing Haifen Ji, 74.
Zhang, Qing jiaqing nian jian, 187.
Fernand Braudel, The Mediterranean and the Mediterranean World in the Age
of Philip II (London: Fontana / Collins, 1975); Roderich Ptak, International
symposium on the Asian Mediterranean (Paris, March 35, 1997) Archipel
55(1998): 1114; Claude Guillot, Denys Lombard, and Roderich Ptak, eds.,
From the Mediterranean to the China Sea: Miscellaneous Notes (Wiesbaden:
Harrassowitz, 1998); Bentley, Sea and Ocean Basins; Leonard Blusse, Chinese Century: The Eighteenth Century in the China Sea Region, Archipel 58
(1999): 107129.
R. Bin Wong, Entre monde et nation: Les rgions braudliennes en Asie, Annales: Histoire, Sciences, Sociales 56(1): 541; Ulises Granados, Maritime
Regions as Centers of the Periphery of Nation States: The Case of the South
China Sea, 19001950, unpublished manuscript; Stein Tnnesson, Locating
the South China Sea, in Locating Southeast Asia: Geographies of Knowledge
and Politics of Space, ed. Paul H. Kratoska et al. (Singapore: Singapore University Press, 2005).
Dongdong Huang, Delimitation of Maritime Boundary between Vietnam and
China in the Gulf of Tonkin (LL. D. diss., University of Ottawa, 1992), 14;
Ulises Granados, The South China Sea and Its Coral Reefs during the Ming
and Qing: Levels of Geographical Knowledge and Political Control, East
Asian History 32/33 (2006/2007): 109128; Louis Richard, Comprehensive
Geography of the Chinese Empire and Dependencies (Shanghai: Tsewei
Press, 1908), 241242.
Almost one-seventh of Guangdongs counties and prefectures bordered the
sea. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1519-041, 03-1799-106.
Yi-faai Laai, The Part Played by the Pirates of Kwangtung and Kwangsi
Provinces in the Taiping Insurrection (Ph.D. diss., University of California,
1950), 28.
JQJJCLFZZ / NM, 3261.
Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 7.
Daniel McMahon, Restoring the Garden: Yan Ruyi and the Civilizing of
Chinas Internal Frontiers, 17951805 (Ph.D. diss., University of California,
Davis, 1999), 284; JQGZZPZZ, 04-01-01-0519-016; JQJJCLFZZ / NM, November 4, 1808.
Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 20.
JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1649-027, 03-1686-011; JQGZZPZZ, 04-01-13-0126-010
Huang, Delimitation of Maritime Boundary, 38; Murray, Pirates of the
South China Coast, 57; JQJJCSSD.
JQJJCLFZZ, April 2, 1796, 03-1684-020; March 28, 1797, 03-1685-019.
285
45. JQJJCLFZZ, August 12, 1799, 03-1686-013, April 26, 1804, 03-1689-015;
Huang, Delimitation of Maritime Boundary, 25.
46. This maritime boundary was basically demarcated by the Sino-French Treaty
of 1887 as a result of the Sino-French War of 18841885. See Keyuan Zou,
Maritime Boundary Delimitation in the Gulf of Tonkin, Ocean Development and International Law 30 (1999): 236; JQJJCLFZZ / NM, December, 21,
1796.
47. Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 9; Charles Wheeler, A Maritime
Logic to Vietnamese History? Littoral Society in Hoi Ans Trading World
c. 15501830, paper presented at the conference Seascapes, Littoral Cultures, and Trans-Oceanic Exchanges,, Library of Congress, Washington DC,
Feburary 1215, 2003; Wheeler, Re-thinking the Sea in Vietnamese History:
Littoral Society in the Integration of Thuan-Quang, Seventeenth-Eighteenth
Centuries, Journal of Southeast Asian Studies 37 (2006), 123153.
48. Alexander Horstmann and Reed L. Wadley, Centering the Margins in Southeast Asia, in Centering the Margin: Agency the Narrative in Southeast Asian
Borderlands, ed. Alexander Horstmann and Reed L. Wadley (New York:
Berghahn Books, 2006), 12.
49. Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 22; JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1684-001,
03-1684-020, 03-1685-019, JQGZZPZZ, 04-01-08-0078-026; Antony, Piracy and the Shadow Economy, 106; I borrow the concept of undertrading from Eric Tagliacozzos study of the Anglo / Dutch colonial frontier in
Southeast Asia. See Tagliacozzo, Secret Trades, Porous Borders: Smuggling
and States along a Southeast Asian Frontier (New Haven: Yale University
Press, 2005), 5.
50. Jennifer Cushman, Fields from the Sea: Chinese Junk Trade with Siam during
the Late Eighteenth and Early Nineteenth Centuries (Ithaca: Cornell University, 1993), 1618.
51. Robert Marks, Commercialization without Capitalism: Processes of Environmental Change in South China 15501850, Environmental History 1
(1996): 77.
52. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1464-076; JQGZZPZZ, 04-01-13-0140-025. It should be
noted that extensive land reclamation on the Pearl River delta contributed in
no small measure to this contentious development. As the deltas population
soared during the late imperial period, more local residents faced the problem
of land shortage. To alleviate this increasing pressure, they sought to create
farmland by constructing barriers to retain the rich river-borne sediments before they were swept out to sea. This lengthy but profitable process often led to
competition and endemic feuding. The resulting social disorder accounted for
the long history of local militarization and community self-defense in Guangzhou, Huizhou, and Chaozhou.
53. Robert Antony, State, Continuity, and Pirate Suppression in Guangdong
Province, 18091810, Late Imperial China 27 (2006): 18; JQSYD, vol. 14,
481; SWJ, vol. 8, 359.
54. JQJJCLFZZ, October 2, 1796, 03-1684-064; Andrade, Companys Chinese
Pirates, 441.
286
55. Antony, Like Froth, 72; JQSYD, vol. 14, 17, 33; see also Eduard B. Vermeer,
Historical Background and Major Issues, in Development and Decline of
Fukien Province in the 17th and 18th Centuries, ed. Vermeer (Leiden: Brill,
1990), 26.
56. The Ming restoration gained the strong support of Zheng Chenggong in
southern Fujian. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1479-044; imperial edict of October 18,
1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 476.
57. Susan Naquin and Evelyn Rawski, Chinese Society in the Eighteenth Century
(New Haven: Yale University Press, 1987), 168; William Skinner, Regional
Urbanization in Nineteenth-Century China, in The City in Late Imperial
China, ed. Skinner (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1977), 219.
58. James Kong Chin, The Junk Trade between South China and Nguyen Vietnam in the Late Eighteenth and Early Nineteenth Centuries, in Water Frontier: Commerce and the Chinese in the Lower Mekong, ed. Nola Cooke and
Tana Li (Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield, 2004), 56.
59. JQJJCLFZZ / NM, 3250, 3261; Antony, Like Froth, 55, 68, 85; JQGZZPZZ,
04-01-03-0037-024; Zhang, Qing jiaqing nian jian, 186187.
60. JQJJCLFZZ, June 15, 1800, 03-2174-011.
61. Imperial edict of January 10, 1796, JQSYD, vol. 1, 8.
62. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1686-014, 03-1665-094; JQJJCLFZZ / NM, 2479.
63. Steinberg, Social Construction, 21.
64. Yan Ruyi, Yangfang Jiyao, 17.20b, in McMahon, Restoring the Garden.
65. Gang Deng, Maritime Sector, Institutions, and Sea Power of Premodern China
(Westport, Conn.: Greenwood Press, 1999), 145; Andrade, Companys Chinese Pirates, 417.
66. R. Bin Wong, Political Economies of Maritime and Agrarian China, 1750
1850, in Wang and Ng, Maritime China in Transition, 27; Deng, Maritime
Sector, 130134.
67. Yan, Yangfang Jiyao, 17.20b.
68. Marcia Yonemoto, Maps and Metaphors of the Small Eastern Sea in
Tokugawa Japan (16031868), Geographical Review 89 (1999): 179180.
69. Ibid., 177.
70. Murray, Piracy and Chinas Maritime Transition, 55; JQJJCLFZZ / NM,
2479.
71. Imperial edict of September 26, 1808, JQSYD, vol. 13, 587.
72. Philip E. Steinberg, The Social Construction of the Ocean (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2001), 52.
73. Yonemoto, Maps and Metaphors, 169170.
74. Imperial edicts of January 10 and November 10, 1796, JQSYD, vol. 1, 8, 333.
75. Imperial edicts of June 26, 1804, January 19, 1808, JQSYD, vol. 9, 247248;
vol. 13, 21.
76. Granados, South China Sea, 127; Daniel Little, Rational-Choice Models
and Asian Studies, Journal of Asian Studies 50 (1991): 3552.
77. Craig A. Lockard, The Sea Common to All: Maritime Frontiers, Port Cities,
and Chinese Traders in the Southeast Asian Age of Commerce, ca. 1400
1750, Journal of World History 21 (2010): 223225.
84.
85.
86.
87.
88.
89.
90.
91.
92.
93.
94.
95.
96.
97.
98.
99.
100.
287
Ibid.
JQGZZPZZ, 04-01-03-0037-024.
Imperial edicts of June 9 and 12, 1805, JQSYD, vol. 10, 298, 304.
JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1684-020.
Eric Hobsbawm, Social Bandits: Reply, Comparative Studies in Society and
History 14 (1972): 504.
Antony, Like Froth, 72; The population of the core Canton delta increased
from 1.3 million to 5.3 million between 1723 and 1820. According the Robert Markss estimate, the population of Guangdong rose from 7.9 million in
1693 to 17.1 million in 1793. See Robert B. Marks, Tigers, Rice, Silk, and
Silt: Environment and Economy in Late Imperial South China (Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press, 1998), 280.
Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 28; Antony, Like Froth, 72; Jianmin
Li, Qing jiaqing yuannian chuanchu Bailianjiao qishi yuanyin de tiantao (On
the Origins of the White Lotus Rebellion in Sichuan and Hubei in the First Year
of the Jiaqing Reign), Zhongyang yanjiuyuan jindaishi yanjiusuo jikan (Bulletin of the Institute of Modern History, Academica Sinica) 22 (1993): 395.
Cushman, Fields from the Sea, 99; Yuan, Jing Haifen Ji, 1011.
Guosheng Huang, The Chinese Maritime Customs in Transition, 1750
1830, in Wang and Ng, Maritime China in Transition 17501850, 4344.
Antony, Like Froth, 56; Chin, Junk Trade, 55.
Huang, Chinese Maritime Customs; see also Marks, Tigers, Rice, Silk, and
Silt, 177; Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 29.
Imperial edict of November 24, 1804, JQSYD, vol. 9, 531; Huang, Chinese
Maritime Customs, 44.
Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 2930; Takeshi Inoguchi, Chinas
Intervention in Vietnam and Its Aftermath (17861802): A Re-examination
of the Historical East Asian World Order, in Rethinking New International
Order in East Asia: U.S., China and Taiwan, ed. I Yuan (Taipei: Institute of
International Relations, 2005), 361403; see also imperial edict of November
15, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 465.
Robert Antony, The Problem of Banditry and Bandit Suppression in Kwangtung South China, 17801840, Criminal Justice History: An International
Annual 11, 3233.
JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1684-080.
JQJJCLFZZ, 03-2173-059.
JQSL, vol. 118, 564.
Antony, Problem of Banditry, 11, 3233.
Antony, Like Froth, 83; Chang, Tsai Chien, 4041.
Morse, Chronicles of the East India Company, vol. 2, 369.
Imperial edicts of January 19, April 26, 1804, March 8, 1806, JQSYD, vol. 9,
11, 150; vol. 11, 169; JQJJCLFZZ, 1806, 03-1665-094; Antony, State, Continuity, and Pirate Suppression, 78.
Imperial edict of May 30, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 281; vol. 6, 380381.
J. L. Anderson, Piracy in the Eastern Seas, 17501850: Some Economic Implications, in Starkey et al., Pirates and Privateers, 99100.
288
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
19.
20.
21.
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
289
fucian society, state, and civilization. Adam Yuen-Chung Lui, Ching Institutions and Society, 16441795 (Hong Kong: University of Hong Kong, 1990),
1920; see also Josephine Chiu-Duke, To Rebuild the Empire: Lu Chihs
Confucian Pragmatist Approach to the Mid-Tang Predicament (Albany: State
University of New York Press, 2000), 192.
John K. Fairbank, Introduction: The Old Order, in The Cambridge History
of China: Volume 10, Late Ching 18001911, Part 1, ed. John F. Fairbank
(Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1978); Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 3; Pei Huang, Autocracy at Work: A Study of the Yung-cheng Period,
17231735 (Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 1974), 136137.
Fairbank, Introduction, 26; see also Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 3.
Kuhn, Soulstealers, 190.
It should be noted that the thrones close confidants were usually associated
with the neiting, but not always. They could also be high provincial officials. See
Fairbank, Introduction, 26; Kent Guy, Qing Governors and Their Provinces:
The Evolution of Territorial Administration in China, 16441796 (Seattle: University of Washington Press, 2010).
Ziyang Liu, Qingdai de junjichu (The Grand Council in the Qing Dynasty),
Qingdai dangan (Archival Sources in the Qing Dynasty) 2 (1982): 103104;
Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 56.
Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 199.
The Grand Secretariat was an inner-court agency under the Ming dynasty, but
it gradually became an outer-court one with the establishment of the Grand
Council during early Yongzheng reign. This transition was not complete until
1730.
Shijia Ji, Qianlun qing junjichu yu jiquan zhengzhi (Preliminary Research on
the Grand Council and Autocratic Rule in the Qing Dynasty), Qingshi luncong (Collected Essays on Qing History) 5 (1984): 183.
C. K. Yang, Some Characteristics of Chinese Bureaucratic Behavior, in Confucianism in Action, ed. David S. Nivison and Arthur F. Wright (Stanford:
Stanford University Press, 1966), 134.
Ibid., 134135.
Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 199; H. Lyman Miller, The Late Imperial
State, in The Modern Chinese State, ed. David Sharmbaugh (New York:
Cambridge University Press, 2000), 28.
It should be noted that the Grand Council was shortly abolished (17351737)
in the very beginning of Qianlongs reign. Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers,
265266, 137138; Huang, Autocracy at Work, 16, 149.
Gao, Cong chiying baotai, 9.
Wook Yoon, Prosperity with the Help of Villains, 17761799: A Review of
the Heshen Clique and Its Era, Toung Pao (International Journal of Chinese
Studies) 98 (2012): 505506.
Other prime examples include the councilors Laibao and Zhaohui, who both
died in 1764. Michael G. Chang, A Court on Horseback: Imperial Touring and
the Construction of Qing Rule, 16801785 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Asia Center, 2007), 378379.
290
291
292
3.
4.
5.
6.
7.
8.
9.
10.
11.
12.
13.
14.
15.
16.
17.
18.
293
19. Beatrice Bartlett, The Vermilion Brush: The Grand Council Communications
System and Central Government Decision Making in Mid-Ching China
(Ph.D. diss., Yale University, 1980), 207.
20. Silas H. L. Wu, Communication and Imperial Control in China: Evolution of
the Palace Memorial System, 16931735 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1970); Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers.
21. Qianlong Edict of 1796, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 225, 230.
22. Memorial of Nayancheng, KJJFSB, in CHSBLJQY, 1214; QDJPSSXFFL, vol.
392, 368, 586.
23. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 224; vol. 393, 374; vol. 395, 271; JQJJCLFZZ, January 28, 1799, 03-1710-001.
24. Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 231241.
25. JQJJCLFZZ, April 15, 1798, 03-1708-69; January 28, 1799, 03-1710-001; 16
May, 1799, 03-1710-012; November 21, 1798, 03-1709-061; a case in point
was the conflicts between Delengtai and Funing, Mingliang and Yongbao, QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 632; vol. 395, 129. There were also tensions between
Kuilun and Guangxing, JQJJCLFZZ, February 5, 1800, 03-1711-010; KingTo Yeung, Suppressing Rebels, Managing Bureaucrats: State-Building during
the Taiping Rebellion, 18501864 (Ph.D. diss., Rutgers University, 2007).
26. Imperial Edict of April 9, 1796, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 232; QDJPSSXFFL, vol.
391, 237.
27. Translation from Susan Mann Jones, Hung Liang-Chi (17461809): The Perception and Articulation of Political Problems in Late Eighteenth Century
China (Ph.D. diss., Stanford University, 1972), 173; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 392,
89, 131; SWJ, vol. 11, 480.
28. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 395, 371; Qianlong Edict of 1799, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2,
258; vol. 3, 104; Jones, Hung Liang-Chi, 173.
29. The Jianchang prefect Shi Zuorui alone, for instance, was said to have embezzled
over 500,000 taels of silver. See Yingcong Dai, Yingyun Shengxi: Military
Entrepreneurship in the High Qing Period, 17001800, Late Imperial China
26 (2005): 167; Daniel McMahon, New Order on Chinas Hunan Miao
Frontier, 17961812, Journal of Colonialism and Colonial History 9 (2008):
124.
30. SWJ, vol. 10, 451; vol. 11, 487; JQJJCLFZZ, April 15, 1798, 031708069;
October 23, 1802.
31. JQJJCLFZZ, December 24, 1807, 03-1716-084; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 536;
Yingcong Dai, The Qing State, Merchants, and the Military Labor Force in
the Jinchuan Campaigns, Late Imperial China 22 (2001): 35.
32. JQJJCLFZZ, December 13, 1806, 03-1715-103; September 10, 1805,
03-1661-054.
33. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 152; vol. 395, 182; JQJJCLFZZ, January 21, 1803,
03-1628-002; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 222.
34. JQGZZPZZ, April 9, 1801, 04-01-03-0039-002; see also JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD,
April 25, May 4, 1804; December 16, 20, 24, and 26, 1803; JQJJCSSD, December 16 and 24, 1803, 321; Susan Mann Jones and Philip Kuhn, Dynastic
Decline and the Roots of Rebellion, in The Cambridge History of China,
294
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
51.
vol. 10, pt.1, ed. John K. Fairbank (New York: Cambridge University Press,
1978), 143.
JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD, September 9, 1805; see also February 20, 03-1709-057;
JQGZZPZZ, November 9, 1799, 04-01-03-0138-003; a similar case can be
found in QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 459.
JQJJCLFZZ, February 16, 1800, 03-1599-016; JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD, September 29, 1805; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 297-298; vol. 394, 350; vol. 395, 182;
Daniel McMahon, Qing Reconstruction in the Southern Shaanxi Highlands:
State Perceptions and Plans, 17991820, Late Imperial China 30 (2009): 98.
JQJJCLFZZ / NM, September 29, 1804, 2550; see also JQJJCLFZZ, May 5,
1807, 03-1716-024; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 396, 101, 446.
SWJ, vol. 11, 479; JQJJCLFZZ, December 16, 1799, 03-1655-051; September
10, 1805, 03-1661-054; September 18, 1803, 03-1659-123; JQJJCSSD, August 24, 1804; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 394, 123; vol. 400, 322.
JQQJZ, April 10, 1798, 99.
JQJJCLFZZ, July 1799, 03-1710-013; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 395, 371.
JQJJCLFZZ, March 29, 1807, 03-1664-057; September 10, 1805, 03-1661-054;
December 16, 1804, 03-1661-054; December 7, 1800, 03-1656-095; JQJJCSSD, January 5, 1799; JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD, August 11, 1803; HMD, vol. 9,
104; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 395, 531.
DHLJQ, vol. 2, 4647; see also SWJ, vol. 9, 399, vol. 11, 487; QDJPSSXFFL,
vol. 393, 417, 436; vol. 394, 185, 306; vol. 396, 307; vol. 397, 374; see also
JQJJCLFZZ, October 18, 1799, 03-1655-015; August 15, 1802, 03-1647-031.
JQJJCLFZZ / SHSYD, June 9, 1804.
JQSL, imperial edict of January 1801; vol. 78, 49; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 78;
see also QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 392, 685; vol. 394, 183.
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 394, 540541; see also SWJ, vol. 9, 377, 407408.
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 165, 185; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 236, 245, 269; vol. 1, 236;
see also JQJJCSSD, March 6, 1796, 03-0034-1-0801-059, 03-0034-1-0801-051,
03-0034-1-0801-052; Blaine Gaustad, Religious Sectarianism and the State
in Mid Qing China: Background to the White Lotus Uprising of 17961804
(Ph.D. diss., University of California, Berkeley, 1994), 36.
Gaustad, Religious Sectarianism, 158176; Bi Yuans memorial of 1796,
QZQWSBLJ, vol. 1, 74; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 512; vol. 393, 498.
Qianlong Edict of 1796, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 245, 254, 258, 261263; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 395, 129; Gong Wensheng, Cong Rong Ou Bi (Occasional
Writings after Joining the Army), in Jindai zhongguo shiliao congkan (Collected Source Materials for Modern Chinese History) (Taiwan: Wenhai chubanshe, 1990), 374.
Philip A. Kuhn, Rebellion and Its Enemies in Late Imperial China: Militarization and Social Structure, 17961864 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University
Press, 1970), 37; these data are based on the official report in 1815, JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1649-026; JQSYD, vol. 16, 206; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 67; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 392, 368; vol. 394, 179.
JQJJCLFZZ, May 14, 1801, 03-1701-013.
Jin li xin bian, vol. 15, in CHSBLJQY, 215; CSEBFJ, 149.
295
296
297
90. Peter C. Perdue, China Marches West: the Qing Conquest of Central Eurasia
(Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 2005), 135; Philip Kuhn, Soulstealers: The Chinese Sorcery Scare of 1768 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard
University Press, 1990); Alexander Woodside, The Chien-Lung Reign, in
The Cambridge History of China, vol. 9, pt. 1, ed. Willard J. Peterson (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2002), 303.
91. Nivison, Hoshen.
92. Imperial edict of January 19, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 33; see also JQJJCSSD,
P13; DHLJQ, vol. 2, 42; JQSL, vol. 38, 435.
93. For instance, Fuchangan was sent to the imperial mausoleum to offer sacrifices to the deceased grand emperor, and Wu Xinglan was demoted. Imperial
edict of January 18, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 33; JQQJZ, January 15, 1799, 50;
see also HMD, vol. 9, 298; DHLJQ, vol. 2, 41; JQJJCSSD, P. 74.
94. William T. Rowe, Introduction: The Significance of the Qianlong-Jiaqing
Transition in Qing History, Late Imperial China 32 (2011): 77.
95. Imperial edict of January 18, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 22.
96. Jones and Kuhn argue that Jiaqing achieved very limited success in precipitating basic reforms, Dynastic Decline, 116119; see also Bartlett, Monarchs
and Ministers, 241, 233; Guy, Qing Governors, 141; JQGZZPZZ, 08-0115-004,
08-0115-017; Daniel McMahon, Dynastic Decline, Heshen, and the Ideology of the Xianyu Reforms, Tsing Hua Journal of Chinese Studies 38 (2008):
232.
97. Elman, Imperial Politics, 396; CXLCSL, vol. 12, 4989.
98. According to Confucian teaching, a worthy and loyal scholar-official should
speak out the truth forthrightly without hesitation when the emperor is acting under bad guidance or from a wrong viewpoint, or is exhibiting personal
weakness. See Nivison, Hoshen, 218.
99. Elman, Imperial Politics, 409.
100. For an excerpt of Yi Yan, see QTJ-JQ, vol. 11, 4692; see also Jones, Hung
Liang-Chi, 124.
101. K. C. Liu, Hong Liangji: On Imperial Malfeasance and Chinas Population
Problem, in Sources of Chinese Tradition, ed. W. M. Theodore De Bary and
Richard Lufrano (New York: Columbia University Press, 2000), vol. 2, 172;
see also Kahn, Monarchy in the Emperors Eyes, 71.
102. Jones, Hung Liang-Chi, 141.
103. Imperial edict of October 19, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 397.
104. Adam Yuen-Chung Lui, The Hanlin Academy: Training Ground for the
Ambitious, 16441850 (Hamden: Archon Books, 1981); Judith Whitbeck,
From Kao-cheng to Ching-shih: Kung Tzu-chen and the Redirection of
Literati Commitment in Early Nineteenth Century China, in Jinshi zhongguo jingshi sixiang yantaohui lunwenji (Proceedings of the Conference on
the Theory of Statecraft of Modern China) (Taipei: Academia Sinica, 1984),
327.
105. Hongs letter appears in his collected work titled Juan shi ge wen (Writings
from Juanshi Pavilion), chapter 10, and Qing Shi Gao (Draft History of the
Qing Dynasty). Susan Mann Jones translated the whole text in her dissertation,
298
106.
107.
108.
109.
110.
111.
112.
113.
114.
115.
116.
299
6. It should be noted that the growth of the Junjichu directly led to the abolishment of the Deliberative Council of Princes and Ministers (the agency in charge
of major military affairs) in 1791. Shijia Ji, Qianlun qing junjichu yu jiquan
zhengzhi (Preliminary Research on the Grand Council and Autocratic Rule in
the Qing Dynasty), Qingshi luncong 5 (1984): 179180, 185186; Pei Huang,
Autocracy at Work: A Study of the Yung-cheng Period, 17231735 (Bloomington: Indiana University Press, 1974), 140142.
7. According to Bartlett, the Junjichus most important functions and central responsibilities included communications monitoring, policy deliberation, edict
drafting, archival storage, and publications supervision. See Monarchs and
Ministers, 254.
8. Wook Yoon, Imperial Control, unpublished manuscript, Qing Shi Gao
(Draft History of the Qing Dynasty), vol. 37, 11146.
9. The structure of imperial bureaucracy was generally fixed by statutes and precedents, which constituted the two major parts of the Huidian. All the supplemental modifications since 1759 were institutionalized in the revised Huidian
of 1818. I contend that this sudden revision in 1818 bore an inextricable relationship to the Jiaqing reform and the escalating crises. See Ji, Qianlun qing
junjichu, 182.
10. Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 246.
11. SYJL, vol. 2, 22; see also Man-kam Leung, Juan Ruan (17641849): The Life,
Works, and Career of a Chinese Scholar-Bureaucrat (Ph.D. diss., University of
Hawaii, 1977), 64.
12. SYJL, vol. 13, 130; DHLJQ, vol. 2, 79; JQSL, imperial edict of October 1799,
vol. 53, 687.
13. Qinggui was appointed grand councilor immediately after Heshens imprisonment. Later he became the chief councilor after Yongxing left the Grand Council. See JQSL, imperial edict of January 1799, vol. 37, 418419.
14. Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 258, 242.
15. Yoon, Imperial Control; Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 242; imperial
edict of November 18, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 501; SYJL, vol. 14, 147; JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1463-040, 03-1478-045.
16. Jiaqings main concern was how other bureaucrats might react to knowing
that an official had a private meeting with the emperor. JQJJCLFZZ, September 28, 1801, 03-1482-096.
17. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1632-003, 03-1655-033; Huirong Zhao, Qingting junjichu
yu junji zhangjing (The Grand Council and Its Secretaries in the Qing Court
), Gugong bowuyuan yuankan (Journal of the Palace Museum) 3 (1986): 35.
18. JQSL, imperial edict of February 1802, vol. 94, 261262; see also Bartlett,
Monarchs and Ministers, 243248.
19. JQSL, imperial edict of February 1802, vol. 94, 261262; see also Bartlett,
Monarchs and Ministers, 244.
20. This was similar to what Philip Kuhn describes provincial governors were
doing during the sorcery scare of 1768. See Philip Kuhn, Soulstealers: The
Chinese Sorcery Scare of 1768 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press,
1990).
300
21. Imperial edict of June 17, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 216. Throughout his reign, Jiaqing never appointed to the Grand Council any person whose political duties
were in the Neiwufu. See also Leung, Juan Ruan, 64; Bartlett, Monarchs and
Ministers, 373.
22. The Imperial Clan Office was a neiting agency responsible for matters pertaining
to the imperial family. JQSL, imperial edicts of July 1804 and September 1801,
vol. 132, 789, vol. 87, 147; see also Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 242.
23. Yet this change by no means implies that the principle of interlocking directorates had been abandoned. Grand councilors continued to serve as board
presidents or vice presidents, but they did suffer a downgrading of their high
position in relation to the rest of the bureaucracy. See Bartlett, Monarchs and
Ministers, 242.
24. JQSL, imperial edicts of September 1801 and June 1804, vol. 87, 147, vol.
130, 758759; see Yoon, Imperial Control.
25. JQJJCSSD, imperial edict of June 1802; see also JQSL, vol. 99, 331.
26. Imperial edict of December 6, 1805, JQSYD, vol. 10, 764.
27. Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 269.
28. Imperial edict of January 28, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 41; see also JQJJCSSD, 21;
Leung, Juan Ruan, 6465.
29. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1552-058.
30. Imperial edict of August 25, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 418; Guy, Qing Governors
and Their Provinces: The Evolution of Territorial Administration in China,
16441796 (Seattle: University of Washington Press, 2010), 131133; Bartlett,
Monarchs and Ministers, 201; JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1711-071; Huang, Autocracy
at Work, 148.
31. In 1816, two more zhangjing were added to each of the Chinese and Manchu
groups. Zhao, Qingting junjichu, 3031; see also Bartlett, Monarchs and
Ministers, 206.
32. Imperial edict of January 16, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 22. Censor Fu Tang later
suggested that there should be a quota stipulating how many officials each
outer-court agency could recommend to the Grand Council; see JQJJCLFZZ,
03-9985-048; see also Ji, Qianlun qing junjichu, 185.
33. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-9985-048, 03-1498-020, 03-9985-048; see also SYJL, vol.
13, 131132; Beatrice Bartlett, The Vermilion Brush: The Grand Council
Communications System and Central Government Decision Making in MidChing China (Ph.D. diss., Yale University, 1980), 254.
34. Imperial edict of July 26, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 373; see also SYJL, vol. 13,
132; JQJJCSSD, January 26, 1800.
35. Among them were civil bureaucrats of the third rank or above and military
officials of the second rank or above. For the local officials, they included civil
bureaucrats of niesi or above and military officials of regional commander or
above. This regulation was abolished in the last year of the Jiaqing reign but
was restored during the Daoguang reign. See JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1498-020, QTJJQ, vol.12, 5169, 5418; SYJL, vol. 13,134135.
36. As another measure of restraint, Jiaqing even cut down the Junjichu personnels annual dining fee from 4,000 to 3,100 silver taels in 1801. He also pro-
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
301
302
49.
50.
51.
52.
53.
54.
55.
56.
57.
58.
59.
60.
61.
62.
63.
64.
65.
66.
303
67. Stevan Harrell and Elizabeth J. Perry, Syncretic Sects in Chinese Society: An
Introduction, Modern China 8(1982): 297.
68. Jiaqing Edict of 1796, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 225.
69. Jiaqing Edict of 1799, CHSBLJQY, 211; see also SWJ, vol. 10, 423; JQSL, vol.
78, 1314 I consulted and modified Chus translation, An Introductory Study
of the White Lotus Sect in Chinese History: With Special Reference to Peasant
Movements (Ph.D. diss., Columbia University, 1967), 168.
70. Imperial edict of May 21, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 267; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 331;
Daniel Overmyer, Folk Buddhist Religion (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1976), 36.
71. Hok-lam Chan, The White Lotus-Maitreya Doctrine and Popular Uprisings
in Ming and Ching China, Sinologica 10 (1969): 219; Susan Naquin, Millenarian Rebellion in China: The Eight Trigrams Uprising of 1813 (New Haven:
Yale University Press, 1976); William Stanton, The Triad Society, Or, Heaven
and Earth Association (Hong Kong: Kelly and Walsh, 1900), 6.
72. Lars P. Laamann, Christian Heretics in Late Imperial China: Christian Inculturation and State Control, 17201850 (London: Routledge, 2006), 6869, 7374.
73. Overmyer, Folk Buddhist Religion, 31.
74. Joseph Esherick discredits the once common claim that the Boxer Rebellion of
1900 had a White Lotus link. See Esherick, The Origins of the Boxer Uprising
(Berkeley: University of California Press, 1987).
75. Qiang Fang, Hot Potatoes: Chinese Complaint Systems from Early Times to
the Late Qing (1898), Journal of Asian Studies 68 (2009): 11211122; Jonathan K. Ocko, Ill Take It All the Way to Beijing: Capital Appeals in the
Qing, Journal of Asian Studies 47 (1988): 294; William T. Rowe, Introduction: The Significance of the Qianlong-Jiaqing Transition in Qing History,
Late Imperial China 32 (2011): 79.
76. Imperial edicts of December 17, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 542; vol. 13, 702.
77. Imperial edicts of July 15, 1799, May 2, 1807, JQSYD, vol. 4, 241; vol. 12,
130; see also JQQJZ, 410.
78. It is not unreasonable to infer that Heshen, as longtime General Commandant
of the Capital Gendarmerie, had played an important role in restraining capital appeals during the late Qianlong reign. JQQJZ, 512, 364.
79. JQQJZ, 512; see also DHLJQ, vol. 2, 73.
80. JQQJZ, 512. See also see also JQJJCSSD, 03-0034-1-0804-219.
81. Imperial edict of December 11, 1806, JQSYD, vol. 11, 961; Ocko, Ill Take
It, 296; JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1489-087; In his recent study of the Qing examination boycotts (bakao), Seunghyun Han also notices a sharp rise in the amount
of such unusual protest by Confucian exam candidates during the early nineteenth century due to Jiaqings lenient policy. Seunghyun Han, The Punishment of Examination Riots in the Early to Mid-Qing Period, Late Imperial
China 32 (2011): 155.
82. Imperial edicts of June 9, 1800, November 18, 1803, October 26, 1807,
JQSYD, vol. 5, 292, vol. 8, 451, vol. 12, 499.
83. JQSYD, vol. 5, 56; Ocko, Ill Take It, 301; JQJJCLFZZ, June 1, 1806,
03-1496-001.
304
84. For detailed information about the punishment, see JQJJCLFZZ, October 20,
1807, 03-1629-068; November 27, 1809, 03-1527-058; December 21, 1810,
03-1537-048; see also imperial edict of June 15, 1803, JQSYD, vol. 8, 203, vol.
11, 961.
85. In comparison with other provinces, Shandong and Zhili had far more unsolved cases in 1810, which might partly explain the mobilization and outbreak
of the Eight Trigram uprising in both areas three years later. JQJJCLFZZ, December 21, 1810, 03-1537-048.
86. JQJJCLFZZ, November 17, 1806, 03-1629-024; January 14, 1800, 03-2180-002;
December 8, 1799, 03-1710-037; October 12, 1799, 03-1477-088; October 16,
1799, 03-1477-090.
87. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1477-083; October 1799, 03-1655-019, 03-1655-021; January, 1807, 03-1500-039; February 27, 1803, 03-2497-024; March 18, 1803,
03-2497-024; April 5, 1806, 03-1600-006, 03-1600-008; undated, 03-2173-059;
1803, 03-2497-037; JQJJCLFZZ / JBDNM, November 9, 1807, 2943.
88. Imperial edict of November 5, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 438; Elizabeth J. Perry,
Popular Protest and Political Progress in Modern China, in Chinas Quest
for Modernization: A Historical Perspective, ed. Fredrick Wakeman, Jr., and
Wang Xi (Berkeley: Institute of East Asian Studies, University of California,
1997), 251; even from the perspective of the modern Chinese state, capital appeals remain an important part of the strategy for maintaining communication
with ordinary people and giving them some feeling that the center will watch
out for them.
89. It was said that Heshens personal collection of treasures was even more impressive than that of Qianlong. See DHLJQ, vol. 3, 91; HMD, vol. 9, 33, 50,
302; Harold L. Kahn, Monarchy in the Emperors Eyes: Image and Reality in
the Chien-lung Reign (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1971),
88, 9195.
90. Nancy Park, Managing Corruption in Code and Practice: The Prosecution of
Jiang Zhou and Qian Du, in Dragons, Tigers, and Dogs: Qing Crisis Management and the Boundaries of State Power in Late Imperial China, ed. Robert
J.Antony and Jane Kate Leonard (Ithaca: Cornell University East Asian Program, 2002) 155181; Susan Mann Jones, Hung Liang-Chi (17461809):
The Perception and Articulation of Political Problems in Late Eighteenth Century China (Ph.D. Diss., Stanford University, 1972), 176.
91. David S. Nivison, Hoshen and His Accusers: Ideology and Political Behavior
in the Eighteenth Century, in Confucianism in Action, ed. David S. Nivison
and Arthur F. Wright (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1966), 235.
92. Imperial edict of January 15, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 2122; see also DHLJQ,
vol. 2, 68; HMD, vol. 8, 383.
93. Imperial edict of March 5, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 106; JQGZZPZZ, November
20, 1799, 04-01-06-0005-002; see also JQSL, vol. 37, 427; JQQJZ, February
12, 1799, 315.
94. QTJ-JQ, vol. 11, 4843, 4849; vol. 12, 5204; see also DHLJQ, vol. 5, 164;
XTZL, vol. 1, 2728; Elliott, The Manchu Way, 316.
305
95. Michael G. Chang, A Court on Horseback: Imperial Touring and the Construction of Qing Rule, 16801785 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University
Asia Center, 2007), 7, 422429; Qing bai lei chao (The Classified Anthology of Qing Anecdotes), ed. Xu Ke (Beijing: Zhonghua shuju, 1984), vol. 4,
1503; see also Kahn, Monarchy in the Emperors Eyes, 95; Rowe, Introduction, 79.
96. JQSYD, vol. 9, 484; Zhang, Penitence Silver, 35, 63; Qi, Qingdai neiwufu,
197; Susan Mann Jones and Philip Kuhn, Dynastic Decline and the Roots of
Rebellion, in The Cambridge History of China, vol. 10, pt. 1, ed. John K.
Fairbank (New York: Cambridge University Press, 1978), 118.
97. Tuan-Hwee Sng, Size and Agency Problems in Early Modern China and Japan (Ph.D. diss., Northwestern University, 2011), 4041.
98. R. Bin Wong, Confucian Agendas for Material and Ideological Control in
Modern China, in Culture and State in Chinese History: Conventions, Accommodations, Critiques, ed. Theodore Huters et al. (Stanford: Stanford
University Press, 1997), 319.
99. Ho-Fung Hung, Contentious Peasants, Paternalist State, and Arrested Capitalism in Chinas Long Eighteenth Century, in The Historical Evolution of
World-Systems, ed. Christopher Chase-Dunn and Eugene N. Anderson (New
York: Palgrave, 2005), 160.
100. R. Bin Wong, Decline and Its Opposition, 17811850, in Nourish the
People: the State Civilian Granary System in China, 16501850, ed. PierreEtienne Will and R. Bin Wong (Ann Arbor: Center for Chinese Studies, University of Michigan, 1991), 76; JQGZZPZZ, August 5, 1799, 04-01-03-0138-009;
see also JQSL, imperial edict of December 1801 and December 1802, vol. 92,
218, vol. 106, 416; JQJJCLFZZ, November 1, 1799, 03-1791-012; Eduard B.
Vermeer, The Mountain Frontier in Late Imperial China: Economic and Social Developments in the Dabashan, Toung Pao 77 (1991): 323.
101. Lillian M. Li, Fighting Famine in North China: State, Market, and Environmental Decline, 1690s1990s (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2007).
102. Randall A. Dodgen, Controlling the Dragon: Confucian Engineers and the
Yellow River in the Late Imperial China (Honolulu: University of Hawaii
Press, 2001).
103. As Daniel McMahon holds, following the White Lotus rebellion, local elites
played an increasingly important role in building and managing water control projects in southern Shaanxi. See Qing Reconstruction in the Southern
Shaanxi Highlands: State Perceptions and Plans, 17991820, Late Imperial
China, 30(2009): 110.
104. JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1649-027; SWJ, vol. 11, 472; see also Yingcong Dai, Yingyun
Shengxi: Military Entrepreneurship in the High Qing Period, 17001800,
Late Imperial China, 26 (2005): 5055.
105. Dai, Yingyun, 5354.
106. Sng, Size and Agency Problems, 5960, 6869, 111.
107. SWJ, vol. 11, 470, 472.
108. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 395, 656; KJJFSB, 279.
306
109. SWJ, vol. 11, 472, 485; Man-houng Lin, China Upside Down: Currency, Society, and Ideology, 18081856 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University
Press, 2006), 295.
110. Imperial edicts of August 25, 1802, December 3, 1803, and March 18, 1799,
JQSYD, vol. 7, 273; vol. 8, 479; vol. 4, 95; JQQJZ, 324, 381; QZQWSBLJ,
vol. 4, 36; vol. 2, 139; Yeh-chien Wang, Land Taxation in Imperial China,
17501911 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1974).
111. Yuping Ni, Steady Customs Duties in the Daoguang Depression, Essays
in Economic and Business History 31 (2013): 7980; Ni, Amounts of Customs Duties in the Jiaqing and Daoguang Reigns of the Qing Dynasty: An
Examination of the Daoguang Depression, Xueshu yuekan (Academic Studies Monthly) 42 (2010): 136; Chin Keong Ng, Trade and Society: The Amoy
Network on the China Coast 16831735 (Singapore: National University of
Singapore Press, 1983), 71.
112. JQJJCLFZZ, March 20, 1811, 03-1769-079; Ni, Amounts of Customs
Duties, 136.
113. From 1778 to 1786, Heshen served as the president of the Board of Revenue, the director of the Imperial Household Department, and the superintendent of the Congwenmen. Guosheng Huang, Yapian zhanzheng qian de
dongnan sisheng haiguan (The Customs in Chinas Four Southeastern Provinces before the Opium War) (Fuzhou: Fujian renmin chubanshe, 2000),
419442.
114. Xiaoning Zhang, Guangdong shisanhang shuaibai yuanyin shitan (A Study
of the Reasons for the Decline of the Thirteen Hongs in Guangdong) Zhongguo shehui jingjishi yanjiu (Journal of Chinese Socioeconomic History) 2(1996):
8789.
115. JQJJCLFZZ, May 18, 1799, 03-1791-008; March 20, 1811, 03-1769-079.
116. Ni, Steady Customs Duties, 8485; Chengming Wu, Zhongguo de xiandaihua: shichang yu shehui (Chinas Modernization: Market and Society) (Beijing: sanlian shudian, 2001).
117. Prasenjit Duara, Culture, Power, and the State: Rural North China, 1900
1942 (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1988).
118. Seunghyun Han, Re-inventing Local Tradition: Politics, Culture, and
Identity in Early 19th Century Suzhou (Ph.D. diss., Harvard University,
2005).
119. DHLJQ, vol. 5, 167, see also Kahn, Monarchy in the Emperors Eyes, 251.
120. Joel S. Migdal, State in Society: Studying How State and Societies Transform and Constitute One Another (Cambridge: Cambridge University
Press, 2001), 231.
121. R. Bin Wong, China Transformed: Historical Change and the Limits of European Experience (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1997), 102.
122. Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 119; JQJJCSSD, January 4, 1796,
0203.
123. JQJJCLFZZ, February 5, 1800, 03-1711-010; JQJJCSSD, July 1, 1798.
124. Imperial edict of March 10, 1799, and September 4, 1802, JQSYD, vol. 4, 82,
vol. 7, 290; JQQJZ, February 12, 1799;; QTJ-JQ, vol. 11, 4851; see also
125.
126.
127.
128.
129.
130.
131.
132.
133.
134.
135.
136.
137.
307
Bartlett, Vermilion Brush, 261; Timothy Brook, The Confusions of Pleasure: Commerce and Culture in Ming China (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1999).
William T. Rowe, Chinas Last Empire: The Great Qing (Cambridge, Mass.:
Harvard University Press, 2009), 185; QTJ-JQ, vol. 11, 4845; see also SWJ,
vol. 9, 398; Bartlett, Monarchs and Ministers, 182183.
JQJJCLFZZ, January 23, 1801, 03-1657-019.
Gong Jinghan, On Suppressing the Rebels, in QZQWSBLJ, vol. 5, 173;
Shengjie Zhang, Baojia lun, in Kung-chuan Hsiao, Rural China: Imperial
Control in the Nineteenth Century (Seattle: University of Washington Press,
1960), 66; Xianmin Wang and Shuhong Chang, Wanqing baojia zhi de lishi
yanbian yu xiangchun quanli jiegou (The Historical Evolution of the Baojia
System and the Rural Power Structure in Late Qing), Shixue yuekan Historical Studies Monthly 5 (2000): 135.
Philip A. Kuhn, Rebellion and Its Enemies in Late Imperial China: Militarization and Social Structure, 17961864 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University
Press, 1970), 6061.
Ibid., 44; Jiaqing Edict of 1801, in QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 293; see also SWJ,
vol. 10, 434; Gong Wensheng, Cong Rong Ou Bi (Occasional Writings
after Joining the Army), in Jindai zhongguo shiliao congkan (Collected
Source Materials for Modern Chinese History) (Taiwan: Wenhai chubanshe, 1990), 580.
Lebaos memorial of 1801, in QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 235; QDJPSSXFFL, vol.
395, 654; vol. 396, 266.
SWJ, vol. 9, 400; see also JQJJCSSD, May 17, 1796; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 19;
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 421, 429.
SWJ, vol. 9, 385; JQSL, imperial edict of May 1805, vol. 144, 972; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 4, 154; see also Daniel McMahon, Restoring the Garden: Yan Ruyi
and the Civilizing of Chinas Internal Frontiers, 17951805 (Ph.D. diss.,
University of California, Davis, 1999), 225.
Elisabeth Kaske, Fund-Raising Wars: Office Selling and Interprovincial Finance in Nineteenth-Century China, Harvard Journal of Asiatic Studies 71
(2011): 91; Xuanzhi Dai, Zhongguo mimi zongjiao yu mimi huishe (Secret
Religions and Secret Societies in China) (Taipei: Shangwu yinshuguan, 1990),
vol. 2, 613, 271.
Kuhn, Rebellion and Its Enemies, 49.
James Polachek, Gentry Hegemony: Soochow in the Tung-chih Restoration, in Conflict and Control in Late Imperial China, ed. Frederic Wakeman,
Jr., and Carolyn Grant (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1975).
R. Bin Wong, Social Order and State Activism in Sung China: Implications
for Later Centuries, Journal of Sung-Yuan Studies 26 (1996): 230; Shigeta
Atsushi, The Origins and Structure of Gentry Rule, in State and Society in
China: Japanese Perspectives on Ming-Qing Social and Economic History,
ed. Linda Grove and Christian Daniels (Tokyo: University of Tokyo Press,
1984), 350353.
Han, Re-inventing Local Tradition, 45, 304; Polachek, Gentry Hegemony.
308
138. Huaiyin Li, Fiscal Cycles and the Low-Equilibrium Trap under the Qing,
unpublished manuscript; Feng Chen, Qingdai junfei yanjiu Research into
Qing Military Finance (Wuhan: Wuhan daxue chubanshe, 1992), 275.
139. For instance, two Lianghuai salt merchantsHong Zhenyuan and Cheng
Jiandemade a donation of 2 million taels to the emperor in 1800. Susan
Mann, Local Merchants and the Chinese Bureaucracy, 17501950 (Stanford:
Stanford University Press, 1987), 94; Chen, Qingdai junfei, 333; Li, Fiscal
Cycles.
140. JQSL, imperial edict of March 1800, vol. 61, 813; QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 200;
see also JQJJCLFZZ, October 3, 1806, 03-1793-114; June 30, 1807,
03-1776-050; April 2, 1809, 03-1776-082; imperial edict of March 6, 1800,
JQSYD, vol. 5, 112.
141. Kaske, Fund-Raising Wars, 9091; Sng, Size and Agency Problems, 35.
142. Han, Re-inventing Local Tradition, 304; Mary Clabaugh Wright, The Last
Stand of Chinese Conservatism: The Tung-chih Restoration, 18621874
(Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1966), 89; Yung Wei, Elite Recruitment and Political Crisis: A Study of Political Leaders of the Ching Period,
16441911 (Ph.D. diss., University of Oregon, 1967), 4547.
143. See the confessions of Wang Sanhuai, Lin Zhihua, Zhang Xunlong, and Qin
Jiayao, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 274; see also JQQJZ, January 20, 1799, 60; imperial edict of April 13, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 214; HMD, vol. 9, 104.
144. Jiaqing Edict of 1799, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 109, 110.
145. QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 393, 391, 405-406, 410, 454; JQQJZ, 430; SWJ, vol. 9,
399; see also QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 147.
146. Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 117119; James M. Polachek, Inner
Opium War (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1992), 299301;
QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 391, 141; vol. 395, 146; see also SWJ, vol. 13, 515; Jiaqing Edict of 1799, QZQWSBLJ, vol. 2, 272273; vol. 3, 150.
147. Imperial edicts of May 12, September 25 and November 2, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4,
161164, 347349, 429; QDJPSSXFFL, vol. 394, 183; see also SWJ, vol. 9, 407.
148. Imperial edicts of February 25 and April 17, 1799, JQSYD, vol. 4, 62, 132.
149. QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 118, 244; JQQJZ, 439.
150. QZQWSBLJ, vol. 3, 274.
151. Ho-Fung Hung Protest with Chinese Characteristics: Demonstrations, Riots,
and Petitions in the Mid-Qing Dynasty (New York: Columbia University
Press, 2011).
152. Samuel P. Huntington, Political Order in Changing Societies (New Haven:
Yale University Press, 1968); Wei, Elite Recruitment and Political Crisis;
Joel Migdal, An Anthropology of the State: Struggles for Domination, in
State in Society, 106.
153. Jonathan Spence, Treason by the Book (New York: Viking, 2001); Guy, Qing
Governors, 146147.
154. According to Wei, the importance of the Mongols in the suppression of political crises was at its highest during the White Lotus rebellion, as the Mongols constituted 20 percent of all the individuals recruited into the core-elite
during that crisis. See Elite Recruitment, 181.
309
155. Chang, A Court on Horseback, 430; Polachek, Inner Opium War, 43; Guy,
Qing Governors, 143.
156. Jones and Kuhn, Dynastic Decline, 117.
157. With regard to the post of provincial governor, the ratio of Manchu to Chinese
appointees rose quickly during the Heshen decades. See Guy, Qing Governors,
138; Leung, Juan Ruan, 141; Lawrence D. Kessler, Ethnic Composition of
Provincial Leadership during the Ching Dynasty, Journal of Asian Studies
28 (1969): 499.
158. Imperial edict of July 13, 1808, JQSYD, vol. 13, 445; see also SWJ, vol. 13,
517; Gong, Cong Rong Ou Bi, 167183.
159. This finding differs from traditional observations that conclude that the upsurge in Han Chinese military power did not occur until the Taiping rebellion.
160. Wei, Elite Recruitment, 241; Yishan Xiao, Qingdai tongshi (General History
of the Qing Dynasty) (Taibei: Taiwan shangwu yinshuguan, 1962).
161. A similar point can be made about the core elite from southeast China. Han,
Re-inventing Local Tradition, 19; Wei, Elite Recruitment, 270.
310
21.
22.
23.
24.
25.
26.
27.
28.
29.
30.
31.
32.
311
1802): A Re-examination of the Historical East Asian World Order, in Rethinking New International Order in East Asia: U.S., China and Taiwan, ed. I
Yuan (Taipei: Institute of International Relations, 2005), 361403.
Peter Perdue, Embracing Victory, Effacing Defeat: Rewriting the Qing Frontier
Campaigns, in The Chinese State at the Borders, ed. Diana Lary (Vancouver:
University of British Columbia Press, 2007), 122; Truong Buu Lam, Intervention versus Tribute, 179; Stephen D. Krasner, Organized Hypocrisy in
Nineteenth-Century East Asia, International Relations of the Asia-Pacific 1
(2001): 173197; Zhaoguang Ge, Costume, Ceremonial, and the East Asian
Order: What the Annamese King Wore When Congratulating the Emperor
Qianlong in Jehol in 1790, Frontiers of History in China 7 (2012): 143;
Womack, China and Vietnam, 136.
Liang, Yuenan xishan, 55; Dutton, Tay Son Uprising, 114.
Lamb, Mandarin Road, 146; The two border disputes occurred in 1781 and
1792. Imperial edict of January 8, 1806, JQSYD, vol. 11, 785; QTJ-JQ, vol.
11, 4635.
Liang, Yuenan xishan, 57; Woodside, The Tay-son Revolution in Southeast
Asian History, unpublished pamphlet, 56, cited in Dutton, Tay Son Uprising;
see also Inoguchi, Chinas Intervention.
Victor Lieberman, Strange Parallels: Southeast Asia in Global Context, c. 800
1830 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2003), 20; David Joel Steinberg, ed., In Search of Southeast Asia (Honolulu: University of Hawaii, 1987),
128.
Lamb, Mandarin Road, 64; Nicholas Tarling, The Cambridge History of
Southeast Asia, vol. 2, pt. 1 (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2000),
37.
Mark W. McLeod, The Vietnamese Response to French Intervention, 1862
1874 (New York: Praeger, 1991), 911; Lamb, Mandarin Road, 139145;
Dutton, Tay Son Uprising, 3.
Woodside, Vietnam and the Chinese Model; Liam C. Kelly, Beyond the Bronze
Pillars: Envoy Poetry and the Sino-Vietnamese Relationship (Honolulu: University of Hawaii Press, 2005); Kelley, Confucianism in Vietnam: A State of
the Field Essay, Journal of Vietnamese Studies 1 (2006): 347.
Leiping Zhang, Trade and Security Issues in Sino-Vietnamese Relations, 1802
1874 (Ph.D. diss., National University of Singapore, 2008), 272, 246247;
Nola Cooke, Nineteenth-Century Vietnamese Confucianization in Historical
Perspective: Evidence from the Palace Examinations (14631883), Journal of
Southeast Asian Studies 25 (1994): 270312; Whitmore, Literati Culture,
684; McLeod, Vietnamese Response, 2021.
Frederic Mantienne, The Transfer of Western Military Technology to Vietnam in the Late Eighteenth and Early Nineteenth Centuries: The Case of the
Nguyen, Journal of Southeast Asian Studies 34 (2003): 532.
Zhang, Trade and Security, 8384.
Ibid.; Whitmore, Literati Culture, 684685; Wentang Xu, Shijiu shiji qingyue waijiao guanxi zhi yanbian (The Transformation of Sino-Vietnamese
Diplomatic Relations in the Nineteenth Century), Zhongyang yanjiuyuan
312
33.
34.
35.
36.
37.
38.
39.
40.
41.
42.
43.
44.
45.
46.
47.
48.
49.
50.
jindaishi yanjiusuo jikan Bulletin of the Institute of Modern History, Academica Sinica 34 (2000): 284285; QDWJSL, 33; Charles Gutzlaff, The Life of
Taou-Kwang, Late Emperor of China; With Memoirs of the Court of Peking;
Including a Sketch of the Principal Events in the History of the Chinese Empire During the Last Fifty Years (London: Smith, Elder and Co.,1852); Inoguchi, Chinas Intervention, 361403.
Imperial edict of August 10, 1802, JQJJCSSD; September 16, 1802, and April
6, 1803, JQSYD, vol. 7, 319; vol. 8, 131; see also JQSL, vol.102, 361362.
Xu, Shijiu shiji qingyue, 281.
Imperial edict of December 18, 1802, JQSYD, vol. 7, 469.
Imperial edict of December 1802, JQSL, vol. 106, 428.
Xu, Shijiu shiji qingyue, 282.
Murakami, Viet Nam, 13, 22; Lamb, Mandarin Road, 198; Gutzlaff, Life of
Taou Kwang, 13; Xu, Shijiu shiji qingyue, 283.
Imperial edict of June 1803, JQSL, vol. 115, 529.
Imperial edict of February 18, 1803, JQSYD, vol. 8, 49; Murakami, Viet
Nam, 25.
The whole text of this handbill can be found in QDWJSL, 9396, 122; R.
Randle Edwards, Imperial Chinas Border Control Law, Journal of Chinese
Law 1 (1987): 35.
Dian Murray, Conflict and Coexistence: The Sino-Vietnamese Maritime
Boundaries in Historical Perspective (Madison, WI: Center for Southeast Asian
Studies, University of Wisconsin -Madison, 1988), 45; Zhang, Trade and
Security, 263268.
Taylor, Birth of Vietnam, 297; Xu, Shijiu shiji qingyue, 284; Vuving, Operated by World Views, 82.
Vuving, Operated by World Views, 82; Dutton, Tay Son Uprising, 50; Anthony Reid, Chinese Trade and Southeast Asian Economic Expansion in the
Later Eighteenth and Early Nineteenth Centuries, in Water Frontier: Commerce and the Chinese in the Lower Mekong, ed. Nola Cooke and Tana Li
(Lanham: Rowman & Littlefield, 2004), 32.
Womack, China and Vietnam, 135, 25; imperial edict of November 14, 1801,
JQSYD, vol. 6, 454; see also DHLJQ, vol. 4, 144.
Li, Ji qianlong nian, 139.
Peter C. Perdue, China Marches West: The Qing Conquest of Central Eurasia
(Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 2005), 552; Alexander Woodside, The Chien-Lung Reign, in The Cambridge History of China, vol. 9,
The Ching Empire to 1800, pt. 1, ed. Willard J. Peterson (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2002), 267; Yingcong Dai, A Disguised Defeat: The
Myanmar Campaign of the Qing Dynasty, Modern Asian Studies 38 (2004):
145188.
JQJJCLFZZ, 03-1684-020; imperial edict of August 3, 1796, JQSYD, vol. 1,
216.
Antony, Like Froth, 39.
Serard to Letondal, July 26, 1797, MEP 701, 255, cited in Dutton, Tay Son
Uprising, 224226.
313
51. Imperial edicts of January 26, 1797, August 6, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 2, 2526;
vol. 5, 389; January 9, March 5, 1797, vol. 2, 41, 80; see also JQSL, imperial
edicts of Jiaqing, December 1802, vol. 106, 427.
52. Janice E. Thomson, Mercenaries, Pirates, and Sovereigns: State-Building and
Extraterritorial Violence in Early Modern Europe (Princeton: Princeton University Press, 1994), 21.
53. Imperial edict of July 23, 1797, JQSYD, vol. 2, 205.
54. Imperial edict of January 9, 1797, JQSYD, vol. 2, 7.
55. Imperial edict of January 26, 1800, JQSYD, vol. 5, 36; Murray, Conflict and
Coexistence, 56.
56. JQJJCSSD, Feburary 12, 1799; Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 43.
57. Edwards, Imperial Chinas Border Control Law, 35.
58. Anne Protin-Dumon, The Pirate and the Emperor: Power and Law on the
Seas, 14501850, in The Political Economy of Merchant Empires, ed. James
D. Tracy (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 1991), 202; Thomson,
Mercenaries, Pirates, and Sovereigns, 115116.
59. Robert Antony, State, Continuity, and Pirate Suppression in Guangdong
Province, 18091810, Late Imperial China 27 (2006): 23.
60. JQJJCSSD, July 23, 1802; QDWJSL, 21; imperial edicts of September 29,
1799, January 26, 1800, October 12, 1801, July 25, 1802, JQSYD, vol. 4, 359;
vol. 5, 36; vol. 6, 411, 41920, 469; vol. 7, 223; see also QDWJSL, 21.
61. Fuma, Ming-Qing Chinas Policy, 28.
62. Woodside, Chien-Lung Reign, 265; see also QDWJSL, 97, 123, 131134.
63. Imperial edict of November 14, 1808, JQSYD, vol. 12, 449; QDWJSL, 135; see
Lo-shu Fu, ed., A Documentary Chronicle of Sino-Western Relations, 1644
1820 (Tucson: University of Arizona Press, 1966), pt. 1, 371, 401.
64. Fu, Documentary Chronicle, pt. 1, 401; Dai, Disguised Defeat, 168.
65. QDWJSL, 161.
66. Takeshi, Tribute and Treaties.
67. Hexiu Quan, The Two Systems of Diplomacy of Late Qing China: External
Relationship, Modernization and Transitional Phase, Journal of Northeast
Asian History 5 (2008): 4243.
68. Robert Montgomery Martin, The Colonial Magazine and CommercialMaritime Journal (London: Fisher & Son, 1840), vol. 1, 226.
69. Gutzlaff, Life of Taou Kwang, 135136.
70. Hosea Ballou Morse, The International Relations of the Chinese Empire: The
Period of Conflict, 18341860, (London: Longmans, 1910), 46.
71. Ibid., 41; memorial of Liangguang governor-general Bailing, May 21, 1809; see
Fu, Documentary Chronicle, pt. 1, 375; Morse, International Relations, 43.
72. Kenneth Maxwell, Naked Tropics: Essays on Empire and Other Rogues (New
York: Routledge, 2003), 261; Morse, International Relations, 43.
73. Maxwell, Naked Tropics, 265.
74. Demetrius Charles Boulger, History of China (London: W. H. Allen & Co.,
18811884), 9.
75. Robert Montgomery Martin, History of the British Colonies, vol. 1, Possessions in Asia (London: Cochrane and Mcrone, 1834), 462.
314
76. Leonard Blusse, Chinese Century: The Eighteenth Century in the China Sea
Region, Archipel 58 (1999): 107128; Jennifer Cushman, Fields from the
Sea: Chinese Junk Trade with Siam during the Late Eighteenth and Early
Nineteenth Centuries (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1993), 66; Stein Tnnesson, The South China Sea in the Age of European Decline, Modern Asian
Studies 40 (2006): 1.
77. Saturday Magazine, (London: John William Parker, 1838), no. 385 (supplement
for June 1838), 251; Vincent Harlow, The Founding of the Second British Empire, 17631793 (London: Longmans, 1952), vol. 1, Discovery and Revolution, 64; C. A. Bayly, Imperial Meridian: The British Empire and the World,
17801830 (London: Longman, 1989), 98; Guosheng Huang, The Chinese
Maritime Customs in Transition, 17501830, in Maritime China in Transition
17501850, 170; Earl H. Pritchard, The Crucial Years of Early Anglo-Chinese
Relations, 17501800 (New York: Octagon Books, 1970), 144.
78. Murray, Pirates of the South China Coast, 10; Antonio Graca de Abreu, Macao, Miguel de Arriaga, and the Chinese: A Note on the Failed British Occupation of Macao in 1808, in China and Her Neighbours: Borders, Visions of the
Other, Foreign Policy, 10th to 19th Century, ed. Sabine Dabringhaus and
Roderich Ptak (Wiesbaden: Harrassowitz Verlag, 1997), 186187; Boulger,
History of China, vol. 3, 23; Lamb, Mandarin Road, 190; Chengkang Fei, Aomen sibai nian (Four Hundred Years of Macao) (Shanghai: Shanghai renmin
chubanshe, 1988), 202.
79. Pritchard, Crucial Years, 385; Chung Tan, China and the Brave New World: A
Study of the Origins of the Opium War (184042) (Bombay: Allied, 1978),
120; Austin Coates, Prelude to Hong Kong (London: Routledge and Kegan
Paul, 1966), 83.
80. Hevia, Cherishing Men from Afar: Qing Guest Ritual and the Macartney Embassy of 1793 (Durham and London: Duke University Press, 1995); J. L.
Cranmer-Byng, The Defences of Macao in 1794: A British Assessment, Journal of Southeast Asian History 5 (1964): 135143.
81. Alain Peyrefitte, introduction to The Immobile Empire, translated from the
French by Jon Rothschild (New York: Knopf, 1992).
82. Hosea Ballou Morse, The Chronicles of the East India Company Trading to
China 16351834 (Oxford: Oxford University Press, 1926), vol. 2, 68.
83. To curb British influence in China, the French naval officer Bruni dEntrecasteaux
visited Canton in 1787. He offered to help suppress the Lin Shuangwen rebels in
Taiwan, an offer the Qing officers declined. QTJ-JQ, vol. 11, 4945; see also
Abreu, Macao, 183184; Fei, Aomen sibai nian, 201; Frederic Wakeman, Jr.,
Drurys Occupation of Macau and Chinas Response to Early Modern Imperialism, East Asian History 28 (2004): 2728; John L. Cranmer-Byng and John E.
Wills, Jr., Trade and Diplomacy with Maritime Europe, 1644c. 1800, in China
and Maritime Europe, 15001800: Trade, Settlement, Diplomacy, and Missions,
ed. John E. Wills (Cambridge: Cambridge University Press, 2011), 241242.
84. Tan, China and the Brave New World, 107; Lamb, Mandarin Road, 57;
Boulger, History of China, vol. 3, 28; Morse, Chronicles of the East India
Company, vol. 2, 369.
315
316
317
126. Saturday Magazine, no. 385 (supplement for June 1838), 254; QDWJSL,
195, 253; see also Boulger, History of China, vol. 3, 36; Report from the Select Committee, 41; Fu, Documentary Chronicle, vol. 1, 37577.
127. Eliza A. Mrs. Robert Morrison, Memoirs of the Life and Labours of Robert
Morrison, vol. 1 (London: Orme, Brown, and Longmans, 1839); Boulger,
History of China, vol. 2, 21; The Chinese Recorder and Missionary Journal,
vol. 18 (Shanghai: Presbyterian Mission Press, 1887), 385.
128. Montalto de Jesus, Historic Macao, 207; Allen Sinclair Will, World-Crisis in
China (Baltimore: John Murphy Company, 1900), 130; Wakeman, Drurys
Occupation; for details about the Amherst mission, see Peyrefitte, Immobile
Empire, 504511.
129. James M. Polachek, Inner Opium War (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 1992); Lianpo Ma, Wanqing diguo shiye xia de yingguo: Yi jiaqing
daoguang liangchao wen zhongxin (Britain under the Gaze of the Late Qing
Empire: Centering on the Jiaqing and Daoguang Reigns) (Beijing: Renmin
chubanshe, 2003), 30, 93.
130. Frederic Wakeman, Jr., Strangers at the Gate: Social Disorder in South China,
18391861 (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1974).
131. Arrighi et al., Resurgence of East Asia, 58; Wakeman, Drurys Occupation,
27; Quan, Two Systems of Diplomacy, 4244.
132. Charles Gutzlaff, A Sketch of Chinese History, Ancient and Modern: Comprising a Retrospect of the Foreign Intercourse and Trade with China (New
York: John P. Haven, 1834), 200.
133. Kang, Hierarchy and Legitimacy, 601; Mary Clabaugh Wright, The Last
Stand of Chinese Conservatism: The Tung-chih Restoration, 18621874
(Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1966), 231.
134. John E. Wills, Jr., Maritime Asia, 15001800: The Interactive Emergence of
European Domination, American Historical Review 98 (1993): 83105.
Conclusion
1. William T. Rowe, Introduction: The Significance of the Qianlong-Jiaqing
Transition in Qing History, Late Imperial China 32 (2011): 74.
2. Michael G. Chang, A Court on Horseback: Imperial Touring and the Construction of Qing Rule, 16801785 (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University
Asia Center, 2007), 432; Ho-Fung Hung, Protest with Chinese Characteristics: Demonstrations, Riots, and Petitions in the Mid-Qing Dynasty (New
York: Columbia University Press, 2011), 44, 134.
3. By preventing an earlier Qing collapse, the Jiaqing reforms might have helped
reassemble almost all of the old Qing territories into a single state during the
Republican period.
4. Bin Wong argues that challenges and capacities are structural; they represent the material and structural features of state-making. Commitment is
ideological; it represents the cultural component of state-making. R. Bin
Wong, China Transformed: Historical Change and the Limits of European
Experience (Ithaca: Cornell University Press, 1997).
318
5. Seunghyun Han, The Punishment of Examination Riots in the Early to MidQing Period, Late Imperial China 32 (2011): 146; Hung, Protest with Chinese Characteristics.
6. Revisionist works looking at crises in the Jiaqing and Daoguang periods have
suggested a surprisingly agile state still at work. Jane Kate Leonard, Controlling from Afar: the Daoguang Emperors Management of the Grand Canal
Crisis, 182426 (Ann Arbor: Center for Chinese Studies, University of Michigan, 1996); Randall A. Dodgen, Controlling the Dragon: Confucian Engineers
and the Yellow River in the Late Imperial China (Honolulu: University of
Hawaii Press, 2001); Lillian M. Li, Fighting Famine in North China: State,
Market, and Environmental Decline, 1690s1990s (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 2007); McMahon points out the continuity between Jiaqings
reform and the Tongzhi restoration in terms of their political use of ideology.
Daniel McMahon, Dynastic Decline, Heshen, and the Ideology of the Xianyu
Reforms, Tsing Hua Journal of Chinese Studies 38 (2008): 252.
7. Robert Hymes and Conrad Schirokauer, introduction to Ordering the World:
Approaches to State and Society in Sung Dynasty China, ed. Hymes and Schirokauer (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1993), 13.
8. Under this circumstance, Grand Secretary Zhang Juzhengs well-intentioned
drive for political centralization and administrative efficiency was simply too
aggressive and idealistic, which created his own enemies. Ray Huang, 1587, A
Year of No Significance: The Ming Dynasty in Decline (New Haven: Yale University Press, 1982).
9. It should be noted that Peter Perdue argues for plausible similarities between
China and Europe during the period of Qing frontier expansion. From the
early seventeenth to the eighteenth centuries, the Qing Empire also engaged in
a competitive state-building process as it pushed it borders outward. Despite
such similarities, I submit that Chinese empire-building was mainly internally
oriented. Peter C. Perdue, China Marches West: The Qing Conquest of Central
Eurasia (Cambridge, Mass.: Harvard University Press, 2005), 549. See also
Theodore Huters et al. eds., Culture and State in Chinese History: Conventions,
Accommodations, Critiques (Stanford: Stanford University Press, 1997), 4.
10. Jack Goldstone, Revolution and Rebellion in the Early Modern World (Berkeley: University of California Press, 1991), 352.
Acknowledgments
First of all, my immense and eternal gratitude goes to Kenneth Pomeranz and R. Bin
Wong for their endless guidance, support, and patience through every stage of this
work. As both distinguished scholars and caring mentors, they were everything a
young historian could hope for. This work has been inspired and profoundly affected by their extensive expertise on Chinese history and strong commitment to
understanding China in a larger perspective. I am also indebted to many other
scholars at the University of California, Irvine, for their resourceful advice, timely
assistance, and great influence. Among them I should particularly mention Jeffrey
Wasserstrom, Qitao Guo, Anne Walthall, and Dorothy Solinger.
While at the University of Hawaii, Manoa, my colleagues in the History Department have provided a supportive and encouraging environment for research as
well as teaching. I owe a special debt of gratitude to the late Jerry Bentley, who
welcomed me into the department with particular kindness and personal support.
He read my entire manuscript in draft and gave me the benefit of his encyclopedic
knowledge on world history and his vast experience as a journal editor. I am also
profoundly grateful to Jun Yoo, Matthew Romaniello, Liam Kelley, Yuma Totani,
Ned Bertz, Ned Davis, Shana Brown, Robert McGlone, Marcus Daniel, Vina Lanzona, Suzanna Reiss, Njoroge Njoroge, Matthew Lauzon, Kieko Matteson, and
John Rosa for their helpful comments on different portions of my book. I am
blessed to be able to benefit from their stimulating advice and the help of many
other colleagues at UH. Any errors and misinterpretations, of course, remain my
own responsibility.
Beyond Honolulu and Irvine, other scholars and friends have generously offered
me advice, encouragement, and intellectual inspiration over the years. First among
these would be Benjamin Elman, who shared his interest in my work and provided
320
Acknowledgments
me with some of his research materials. I greatly appreciate his invaluable feedback and support at crucial stages of this project. For making their unpublished
work available to me, I thank Wook Yoon, John E. Wills, Huaiyin Li, and Tianxiang Jiang. I am indebted to Blaine Gaustad for pointing me to useful primary
sources and, furthermore, sending me copies of his own documents. Also of great
assistance to me are my former professors at Wuhan University, in particular Yong
Chen, Rong Xiang, Gongzhen Li, and Jianmin Zhang, for planting in me the seeds
of a lifelong interest in historical research.
Over the past five years, I have presented research for this book to various academic gatherings, the most important of which was a panel titled Reconfiguring
Sovereignty: The Significance of the Qianlong-Jiaqing Transition in Qing History
at the 2010 annual meeting of the Association for Asian Studies. I am grateful to
Matthew Mosca for organizing this panel and to the discussant William Rowe for
his penetrating comments. I appreciated all the helpful reactions received from
those who attended this and other, similar events.
Along the way, this project has received an ample share of financial and institutional support. Funding was provided by the University of California Pacific
Rim Research Program, the Andrew W. Mellon Foundation, and the American
Council of Learned Societies, as well as several intramural agencies at UC Irvine
(including the Center for Asian Studies, the Humanities Center, the International
Center for Writing and Translation, the History Department, and the School of
Humanities). Researching and writing the manuscript was also made possible by
five internal grants and fellowships from various agencies at UH Manoa, including the University Research Council, College of Arts and Humanities, History
Department, and the Center for Chinese Studies. Equally indispensable for completing this book was access to archival materials granted by the following
Chinese institutions: the First Historical Archives of China, the Office of Recompiling Qing Dynasty History, the National Library of China, the Provincial Library of Hubei, and the libraries of Wuhan University and Beijing University. I
gratefully acknowledge the support of all these organizations and their staff
members.
Portions of the Introduction and Chapter 6 appeared in Prosperity and Its Discontents: Contextualizing the Social Protest during the Late Qianlong Reign,
Frontier of History in China 6 (2011): 347369. Chapter 1 was first published as
Social Crises and Political Reform during the Jiaqing Reign of Qing China,
17961810s, in From Early Tang Court Debates to Chinas Peaceful Rise, ed.
Friederike Assandri and Dora Martins (Amsterdam: Amsterdam University Press,
2009), 3352, and appears here in slightly modified form. I am grateful for the
permission of the editors and publishers to reuse those materials here.
A special note of appreciation is due my editor at Harvard University Press,
Kathleen McDermott, who showed great faith in me from the beginning and endless patience ever after. She readily answered my numerous questions, shepherding
a first-time author through the intricate process of academic publication. My gratitude also goes to the two anonymous readers for Harvard University Press for
their helpful and constructive comments. Philip Schwartzberg expertly drafted the
three maps that appear in this book.
Acknowledgments
321
Above all, I owe an immeasurable debt to my families in both Hunan and Hawaii. From early on, my parents, Huaiqing Wang and Yuqing Gu, instilled in me a
thirst for the education they could never get and made great sacrifice to support
my long academic quest. They have always been there for me as I go through the
ups and downs of my study and life. My wife Baoyan, herself an academic, took
considerable time from her own work to read and comment on my writings. Her
loving companionship, unfailing support, and constant intellectual stimulation
have made the happiness and hardships of an academic life all the more meaningful. I completed this book right before the birth of my son Jihan. I hope that this
is a first gift he will like and learn to appreciate when he grows up. It is with
warm affection that I dedicate this book to all my families.
Index
324
Index
Index
Canton (Guangzhou), 87, 9596, 98, 106,
108109, 194; as pirate headquarter, 86;
as provincial capital, 96, 215; Vietnamese
contact with, 219220; and Macao, 229,
230, 231232; Xiangshan county,
231232, 240; Bogue (Humen), 238, 239,
242, 245, 246; pirate threat to, 237238,
240; Whampoa (Huangpu), 238, 242,
245; Jijing, 240241; Drurys threat to,
241243; and opium smuggling, 246247
Canton system, 98, 101; immediate effects,
106; and Macao, 230; and British, 234,
246247. See also British East India
Company (EIC); Cohong (gonghang)
Capital appeals (&thinsp$jingkong),
184188, 205, 295n63, 304n88
Censors, 168169; Wang Niansun and
Guangxing, 150; Wang Ningfu, 169, 173;
Cai Jiong, 171; and Grand Council
sectaries, 172; Wu Bangqing, 172; He
Yuanlang, 173; Yin Zhuangtu, 173;
Jueluoenzhi, 179; and Neiwufu, 180; and
capital appeals, 185186; vice censor-inchief Jishan, 186; Chang Wen and Lu
Yan, 187; vice censor-in-chief Wang Ji,
187; Gu Jiqi, 204
Centralized local bureaucratic system
( junxian), 25, 38, 59
Chang, Michael G., 122, 189; ethnodynastic domination, 32, 122, 206, 254
Chang Dankui, 204
Changlin, 64
Checks and balances, strategy of, 123, 136.
See also Divide and conquer, strategy of
Chen Dawen, 153
Chen Feng, 201
Cheng, Prince (Yongxing), 162, 168
China-centered history, 12, 209, 227;
dynamic of change in late Qing history,
210
China proper, 38, 39, 54, 55, 61, 126;
inward colonization within, 25; internal
frontiers as outskirts of, 27; Xiangyang as
geographical center of, 51, nonstate spaces
within, 72. See also Outer provinces;
Sino-centric tributary system: tripartite
construction of spatial hegemony
Christianity, 184; Catholicism, 218, 219,
237. See also Missionaries, in China,
Amiot, Pere
Chu, Richard, 47
Civil administration, deterioration of, 8, 31,
161
325
Civil service examination degrees: jiansheng, 29, 53, 202; shengyuan, 53, 107,
183, 199; zhuangyuan, 121; jinshi, 156,
160, 161, 168, 172; juren, 172. See also
Civil service examination system
Civil service examination system, 160, 183;
as primary ladder of success, 29, 179;
expansion, 117; and rise of centralized
bureaucracy, 117; and examination
politics, 122, 155. See also Civil service
examination degrees
Cohong (gonghang): yanghang, 101; as
government-designated go-betweens, 101;
debt and bankruptcy of Hong merchants,
194; trade monopoly, 234235, 246247.
See also Canton system
Coin counterfeiting, 28, 62, 63, 64, 6870,
71; and domestic trade, 69; Qianlongs
policy toward, 72, 79
Collective action, 4, 255; mobilizing
networks, 5; and all-encompassing
contentious crises, 10; local and
supralocal logic of, 37; repertoire of, 77.
See also Contentious politics; Popular
protest; Social movements; Social protest
Commercialization: of public services, 31;
of highland economy, 62, 68; and
privatization of trade, 67; of Lingnan
macroregion, 96
Communication: in Han River highlands,
59, 60; and Confucian agenda for social
order, 76, 78; in South China Sea, 100;
palace-memorial system, 137; Heshens
lateral system of, 138; court letters, 138,
152, 169; information control, 138, 172;
vermilion rescripts, 152; imperial calls for
reform proposals, 159; avenue of (yanlu),
159, 185; and Grand Council, 172; and
capital appeals, 185, 188. See also
Administrative agencies: Chancery of
Memorials to the emperor (Zoushichu)
Confucianism: Confucius as god in White
Lotus teachings, 44; crisis of Confucian
culture, 7576
Constitutional agenda, 164, 165, 298n115;
constitutional reforms, 174, 256
Contentious politics: contentious tradition,
39, 41, 63, 79, 80; transgressive game of,
47; maritime raiding as means of, 83;
within ocean space, 99100; and
all-encompassing contentious crises,
267n18. See also Collective action; Popular
protest; Social movements; Social protest
326
Index
Index
and political sustainability, 50, 254; and
inner court, 121; and emperors political
orientation, 127; dimensions and
submechanisms, 254; yardstick for process
of, 255. See also Frontier-making; Inner
state-building; State-making
Empress of Heaven (Tianhou or Mazu),
100, 103104
Era of political debt, 9, 166
Era of political dividend, 8
Ethnicity: ethnic revolts, 19, 20, 49, 269n9;
ethnic minorities, 25; Qing as multiethnic
empire, 38; ethnic borderland, 61; ethnic
identity, 132, 174; ethnic composition,
171; ethnic hegemony, 205
Eunuchs, 257; usurpation of Wei Zhongxian, 163; Thirteen Eunuch Bureaus (shisan
yamen), 175; imperial control over, 180;
and Eight Trigrams uprising, 184
Event: explanatory power of, 10; internal
temporality of, 11; contentious, 48; and
emperor-bureaucracy relationship, 115;
and all-encompassing contentious crisis,
258; explanatory gap with structure, 258;
and transformations of structures,
267n17, 268n19. See also Structure of
the conjuncture
Faction: struggles, 7, 21, 33, 155, 182;
building, 21, 29, 121; literati, 116, 155,
163; and informal bureaucratic power,
120; Northern Scholars Clique, 122, 156,
157; hyper-faction, 122123, 155,
290n30; controlled factionalism, 155;
Spring Purification Circle, 156; Suzhai
Poetry Society, 156; Xuannan Poetry
Club, 156; Donglin, 156, 162, 163;
imperial charge of factionalism, 176
Fang Ji, 146, 204
Fang Weidian, 141
Fashishan, 156, 160
Feng Guangxiong, 152
Feng Guifen, 30, 163, 207
Filial piety: Qianlongs, 124; Jiaqings, 130,
149, 150, 151; and rulership, 149
Financial contribution to the government
( juanfu), 179180
Fletcher, Joseph, 26
Forbidden City, 1, 60, 147, 150, 160, 184
Foreign relations, 222, 226; scholarly
treatment of, 209; Sino-Vietnamese
relationship, 210229; China-centered
tributary diplomacy, 226, 249; rise of
327
328
Index
Index
Qinba original forest (Qinba laolin);
Three-province border region
Han Seunghyun, 201, 208, 255, 303n81
Heaven and Earth Society (Tiandihui), 7,
18, 19, 28, 42, 9798, 214. See also
Secret societies
Henan province, 2, 51, 53, 280n112;
Nanyang basin, 57; and White Lotus
religion, 72, 73, 82; governor, 143; tax
cut, 193
Hengrui, 77, 158
Heshen: as biggest political upstart, 9, 123,
306n113; as great villain in imperial
history, 22; hegemony of, 29, 123, 137; as
imperial bodyguard, 122; second
emperor, 123; tensions with Agui, 134;
and Susishisan rebellion, 134135;
network of malfeasance and corruption,
137; private system of lateral communication, 138; on jianbi qingye, 147; rebel
from inside (neizei), 151; mishandling of
White Lotus campaign, 151, 154, 158;
Twenty Indictments, 153; forced suicide,
153154; ill-gained wealth, 153154, 178;
as watershed for imperial politics, 163
Highland societies: lack of social control,
53; highland forces, 6370, 7580;
sectarian adaptation to, 7475; local
culture, 7778; contentious tradition, 79
High politics: and sociocultural history, 5;
of social protests, 113; interactions with
bottom-up events and processes, 116. See
also Court politics
Hobsbawm, Eric, 105; Age of Revolution,
265n5
Hong Kong, 87, 92, 229, 233
Hong Liangji: on official corruption, 30,
188; on Guanbi minfan, 31; and White
Lotus campaign, 140; remonstrance letter
to Jiaqing, 159164; and anti-Heshen
movement, 160; career, 160; proposal for
political reforms, 161; as political
visionary, 163
Hong Nak-yu, 134
Ho Ping-ti, 23
Hsu, Wen-hsiung, 19
Huang Yupian, 184
Hubei province: border with Sichuan and
Shaanxi, 12, 27, 69, 72; Yidu, 48, 49, 52,
53, 204; Jianghan plain, 48, 50, 52, 53,
54; Zhijiang, 48, 52, 53; Jingzhou, 4850,
52, 53, 58, 138, 204; Dangyang, 49, 53;
Baokang, 49, 53, 55; Yunxi and Zhuxi,
329
330
Index
Index
Leong, Sow-Theng, 65
Li, Lillian M., 191
Liang Guozhi, 121, 123
Li Changgeng, 92, 98
Li Conghu, 51, 73
Lin Man-houng, 69, 268n23
Lin Shuangwen uprising, 23, 215, 223,
314n83; origin and course of, 1819;
ethnic tension and, 25; as agents of
political change, 114; Heshen and, 137;
military embezzlement in, 141; Fukangan
and, 143
Li Shaobin, 51
Little, Daniel, 78, 268n22; four paradigms
of social movement studies, 37
Liu, K. C., 53, 281n121
Liu, Tsui-jung, 57
Liu Quanzhi, 161, 298n106
Liu Tongxun, 121, 122, 123, 124, 136,
271n36
Liu Zhixie, 51, 52, 73, 75, 145
Local maladministration, 20, 31, 32, 162,
185, 204
Lukang, 142
Lu Kun, 91
Macao: British invasion, 2, 102, 235237,
240246, 265n4; Portuguese control, 84,
230; as pirate base and opium-smuggling
center, 86, 232, 246247; geographical
features, 92, 229; Taipa and Coloane
islands, 229; golden age, 230; and
Canton system, 230, 232; Qing control,
230, 231232, 246248; and Lintin, 236;
as weakest link in British strategic chain
in Asia, 235236
Macartney, Lord George, 234235, 245, 251
Ma Huiyu, 59
Malthusian population trap, 24, 25
Manchus: anti-Manchu sentiment, 2, 46,
82; military prowess and expansion, 26,
138, 146, 207208; ethno-dynastic
domination, 32, 122, 189, 206, 254;
conquest of China, 81, 175; generational
shift, 122; ethnic identity and minority
hegemony, 122, 132, 174, 175, 205;
dissipation of Manchu power, 148, 168,
171, 208, 254, 256; relationship with
Han Chinese, 205207; irregular
recruitment, 207; ethnic superiority over
Chinese, 249. See also Eight Banner
system (baqi); Grand Council (Junjichu);
Han Chinese; Imperial Household
331
332
Index
Military (continued)
138139; military campaigns as hotbed
for corruption, 141; logistics, 141, 153;
awards (shanghao), 143144; misconduct
on battlefield, 143145, 146; playing
with rebels while profiting from it
(yangbing wankou), 144; illegal activities
of soldiers, 146; supreme military
commissioner ( jinglue), 154, 197. See
also Militia, local; Strengthening the
walls and cleaning up the countryside
( jianbi qingye)
Militia, local: local militarization, 19,
198199, 200; xiangyong, 141144, 146,
198199, 207; tuanyong, 199, 200;
tuanbao, 200. See also Fortified hamlets
(zhaibao); Strengthening the walls and
cleaning up the countryside ( jianbi
qingye)
Millenarian sects, 43, 45, 46, 183
Millward, James, 40, 54
Ming dynasty: transition to Qing, 46, 61;
Chenghua reign, 58; peasant rebellions,
58, 61, 77; late
Mingliang, 139, 142, 147, 199, 293n25
Ming policy of closing off mountains, 65;
inward turn of maritime policy, 81, 100;
prohibition of overseas trade, 84; loyalist
movement, 8485, 97, 230; Zheng
Chenggong, 85, 286n56; Zheng He, 100;
Li Dongyang and Yang Jisheng, 156;
Donglin faction, 156, 162, 163; Hai Rui,
161; Wei Zhongxian and eunuch
hegemony, 163; fiscal extraction, 195;
Jiajing and Yongle emperors, 215;
Hongwu emperor, 256. See also Nanyang
trade
Minimalist purge, 157159
Missionaries, in China: Amiot, Pere, 30;
Trenchant, Pierre, 74; La Mothe, Charles,
216; de Behaine, Pigneau, 218; Gutzlaff,
Charles, 250. See also Christianity
Mitchell, Peter M., 9
Money: monetary crisis, 13, 268n23;
bimetallic cash currency, 68; exchange
rate between copper coins and silver, 69;
silver outflow, 194, 247. See also Coin
counterfeiting
Mongols, 168, 308n154; Mongolia, 26, 38,
68, 72; incursions on northern border, 81;
Zunghar wars, 127, 167; in military, 207;
in White Lotus campaign, 308n154
Mosca, Matthew, 155, 266n9
Index
Operational cost of sociopolitical control,
33, 34, 120, 141, 148, 191
Opium: smuggling, 232, 233, 233234,
235, 238; as major English export to
China, 246247. See also Opium Wars;
Smuggling
Opium Wars, 228, 244, 249; and Taiping
rebellion, 3, 208; irregular recruitment of
Chinese after, 207; and Britains
interactive emergence, 251; sustainable
politics and, 255; as conventional onset
of modern Chinese history, 256
Organizational resources to population size,
ratio of, 8, 22, 26, 29. See also Land-topopulation ratio
Ortai, 20, 121
Osborn, Edward, 236
Outer court (waiting), 22; interaction with
inner court, 117, 121, 125, 166, 182;
definition and major agencies, 118;
ambiguous distinction with inner court,
119, 178, 180; monarchical authority
and, 257. See also Inner court (Neiting)
Outer provinces, 38, 39; Tibet, 26, 38, 72,
237. See also China proper; Sino-centric
tributary system: tripartite construction
of spatial hegemony; Xinjiang
Overthrow the Qing and restore the
Ming (fanqing fuming), 46
Ownby, David, 19
Pacification: as anti-pirate strategy, 89; as
anti-sectarian policy, 160, 183, 203
Pan Dakang, 199
Park, Nancy, 188
Patron-client relationships, 29, 64, 120
Perdue, Peter C., 39, 40, 318n9
Protin-Dumon, Anne, 83, 226
Perry, Elizabeth, 188
Piracy: occasional and seasonal, 83;
parasitic, 83, 84; petty, 83, 84; confederation, 8384, 8687, 89, 96, 240; general
forms and nature of, 8389; as avenue of
social mobility, 84; professional, 85, 99,
104105, 106; vs. smuggling and
counterfeiting, 88; as means of survival,
105. See also Maritime violence; Pirates
Pirates: handbill, 8283; as naval mercenaries and free floating resources, 84;
merchant, 85; bases of, 86, 9495;
captives of, 8687; chiefs of, 8687;
internal discord among, 89; booty of,
9596, 213; social makeup of, 9899; vs.
333
334
Index
Portugal (continued)
Europe, 230; economic pragmatism, 230;
vs. Britain, 233, 235; Government of
Goa, 235; Jose Manuel Pinto, 236;
French invasion of, 240241; Bernardo
Aleixo de Lemos Faria, 241242. See also
Macao
Principal-agent problem, 22, 139, 178, 257;
defined, 9. See also Governability;
Political sustainability; State-society
relationship
Prosperous age, 8, 125, 128
Qianlong emperor: as Supreme Abdicated
Monarch, 1, 125, 148; halfhearted
abdication, 12, 124127; approach to
social control, 7; tragedy of late Qianlong
politics, 8; flamboyant governing style, 8,
33, 124, 176, 188, 189; efforts to
eradicate Tiandihui, 19; as fortunate
emperor, 2122; sustaining the
prosperity and preserving the
peace(chiying baotai), 28; monarchical
despotism, 33; manhunt for White Lotus
leaders, 4849; shift of focus in frontiermaking, 72; ad hoc law to curb maritime
violence, 107108; changing pattern of
high politics, 121; worries about Manchu
identity, 122; dilemma of late Qianlong
politics, 124; filiality, 124; propaganda
campaign of self-glorification, 126;
stringent policy against White Lotus sects,
126; Ten Great Campaigns (Shiquan
wugong), 126; Exhausting the army
with excessive wars (qiongbing duwu),
127; growing laxity in disciplining
officials, 140; on jianbi qingye, 147;
centerpiece of emperorship, 148; funeral,
150; efforts of cultural regulation, 155;
southern tours, 188; control over custom
revenues, 193; campaign to invade
Annam, 212213; foreign diplomacy of,
224, 227. See also Divide and conquer,
strategy of; Heshen; Qianlong-Jiaqing
transition
Qianlong-Jiaqing transition, 25, 26, 37,
113, 155; crises during, 8, 12; significance
of, 12, 253, 255; imperial rule in, 28;
piracy crisis, 83, 106; emperorbureaucracy relationship, 117; military
system, 146; literati groupings, 155157;
principal-agent problem, 178; granaries,
190; as turning point of Qing financial
Index
(Neiwufu); Principal-agent problem;
Secret Accounts Bureau (miji chu)
Sewell, William, 10, 22, 67n17, 268n20
Shaannan, 57, 61, 71, 72; Xixiang, 57, 59,
62; governor, 59, 141; Shaangan
governor-general, 61; cadastral survey,
72; xiangyong, 143; military awards, 144;
tax cut, 193; zhaibao, 199
Shaanxi province, 20, 49, 67; and White
Lotus rebellion, 2, 75; and Han River
highlands, 12, 27, 48, 53, 55, 58, 69;
Ankang, 55, 57; Ziyang, 55, 57; Pingli,
55, 57, 62; Xunyang, 55, 62
Shack people (pengmin): and mountain
factories, 57; most distinguishing
characteristic, 64; early history, 65; and
guolu bandits, 66; and salt smuggling, 68;
state policies toward, 70, 72
Shandong province, 17, 72, 73, 304n85
Shanxi province, 68, 73; Wutai Mountain,
189
Shek, Richard, 43, 44, 46
Shen Chu, 136
Siam, 1, 215, 223, 227, 228, 243; SinoSiamese trade, 96; Bangkok, 212; Siamese
king, 212, 214, 217; Gulf of Siam, 218
Sichuan province: and White Lotus
rebellion, 2; and Han River highlands, 12,
27, 48, 53, 55, 58, 69; sectarian
organizations, 49, 77; Yangzi River and,
50; southern Shaanxi and, 57; Chengdu
plain, 57; Sichuan governor-general, 59,
66, 153; population, 61; guolu bandits,
6364, 66, 71; salt smuggling, 68, 71;
xiangyong, 143; tax cut, 193; jianbi
qingye, 200
Sino-centric tributary system: Qings
repositioning in, 6, 14, 254; spatial
interactions across, 11; tripartite
construction of spatial hegemony, 3738,
273n2; as evolving normative order, 210;
Takeshi Hamashita on, 210; and
asymmetric normalcy, 212; internal
strain within, 222; Vietnams renegotiation within, 225; new notions of
territorial sovereignty, 226; realignment
of regional power within, 228; an
nation-state system, 229; rhetoric of
tributary superiority, 243244
Sino-Vietnamese water world, 12, 71, 84,
86, 95, 210, 226; as middle ground,
104. See also Bailongwei (Bach Long Vi);
Jiangping (Giang Binh)
335
336
Index
Index
64; ocean taxes (yangshui), 88; and
capital appeals, 187; base amount
(zhenge) and contingent surplus (yingyu),
193; three-year-comparison (sannian
bijiao), 193; transit tax stations (queguan) and customs bureaus (haiguan),
193; Guangdong maritime customs,
193194; Hoppo (superintendent of
customs at Canton), 194, 238239, 240;
customs duties, 194, 245; commercial
transit tax (lijin), 202; from late Ming to
Republican period, 257
Taylor, Keith Weller, 222
Tay Son regime, 27, 85; sponsorship of
Chinese pirates, 2, 104105, 213; Tay
Son rebellion, 84, 86, 107, 211, 212;
breakdown of, 86, 9596; military
victory against Qing invasion, 212213,
222; foreign policy, 214; plan to conquer
Liangguang, 214; homage-paying visit to
Qianlong, 215216; diplomacy with
European outposts, 223; two-faced policy
toward Qing government, 224
ter Haar, B. J., 48
Territorial expansion, 24, 2629, 38,
121
Thomson, Janice E., 83, 225
Three Feudatories rebellion, 81
Three-province border region, 5861, 63,
66, 6870, 7677, 101102. See also Han
River highlands
Three teachings unite in one (sanjiao
heyi), 42
Tilly, Charles, 5, 166
Tongzhi Restoration, 250, 256, 318n6
Tonkin, Gulf of, 86, 91,95, 101
Transgressive political violence, 41, 47
Tribute gifts ( jingong) 188190, 228
Tuanlian: organization, 198199; official
supervision and gentry management, 199;
Tuanyong, 199200
Verba, Sidney, 6, 166
Vermeer, Eduard, 61
Vietnam: tributary tie with Chinese, 2, 229;
Mekong delta, 91; trade with Qing, 98,
107, 219; dynastic history, 211; Nam Viet
as first predecessor state, 211; Red River,
211, 217, 246; Le Chieu Thong, 212;
Trinh-Nguyen rivalry, 212; Nguyen Nhac,
213; Quang Trung emperor (Nguyen Hue
or Nguyen Quang Binh), 213217, 220,
223, 225; Chu-nho vs. Chu-nom, 214;
337
Gia Long emperor (Nguyen Anh or Ruan
Fuying), 214, 219, 220223, 245246;
Nguyen Quang Toan (Ruan Guangzan),
217, 220, 224; islands of Callao and
Pulo-Condore, 218; Nguyen-Tay Son
confrontation, 218; commitment to the
Neo-Confucian model, 219; Minh Mang
emperor, 223. See also Nguyen dynasty;
Sino-Vietnamese water world; Tay Son
regime
338
Index
Index
Zhang Xianzhong, 77
Zhang Xuecheng, 162, 163
Zhang Zhengmo, 50, 52, 143
Zhaolian, Prince, 31, 158
Zhao Tuo (Trieu Da), 211, 221
Zhejiang province, 85, 91, 92, 152, 211;
governor, 152; Ningbo, 234
Zheng Yangwen, 210
Zheng Yi, 86, 89; Zheng Yis wife, 86, 89
339